Selected quad for the lemma: reason_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
reason_n church_n scripture_n tradition_n 3,753 5 9.2711 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A59248 Sure-footing in Christianity, or Rational discourses on the rule of faith with short animadversions on Dr. Pierce's sermon : also on some passages in Mr. Whitby and M. Stillingfleet, which concern that rule / by J.S. Sergeant, John, 1622-1707. 1665 (1665) Wing S2595; ESTC R8569 122,763 264

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

none_o of_o the_o pretend_a rule_n of_o faith_n all_o of_o they_o building_n on_o scripture_n letter_n be_v certain_a disc._n 2._o 3_o 4._o without_o tradition_n it_o follow_v that_o no_o other_o company_n have_v any_o principle_n of_o distinction_n from_o other_o that_o be_v either_o of_o constitution_n or_o self-preservation_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o church_n but_o that_o which_o adhere_v to_o tradition_n all_o the_o loud_a outcry_n then_o make_v common_o against_o that_o body_n which_o adhere_v to_o tradition_n call●d_n roman-catholick_n for_o account_v itself_o only_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o exclude_v all_o other_o be_v but_o empty_a noise_n and_o her_o claim_n rational_a and_o wellgrounded_n till_o it_o be_v show_v by_o evident_a discourse_n that_o the_o other_o pretender_n have_v some_o other_o more_o evident_a and_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v who_o be_v of_o the_o church_n who_o not_o than_o this_o of_o tradition_n now_o produce_v and_o explicate_v upon_o which_o she_o proceed_v and_o by_o which_o she_o consist_v 12._o there_o be_v no_o argue_v against_o tradition_n out_o of_o scripture_n for_o since_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v disc._n 4._o there_o can_v be_v no_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o scripture_n letter_n without_o tradition_n this_o must_v first_o be_v suppose_v certain_a ere_o the_o scripture_n letter_n can_v be_v rational_o hold_v such_o and_o consequent_o aught_o in_o reason_n to_o be_v hold_v uncertain_a while_o tradition_n be_v think_v ●it_n to_o be_v argue_v against_o that_o be_v while_o its_o certainty_n be_v doubt_v of_o wherefore_o since_o none_o can_v argue_v solid_o upon_o uncertain_a ground_n none_o ought_v to_o argue_v against_o tradition_n out_o of_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n 13._o none_o can_v in_o reason_n oppose_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o any_o church_n against_o tradition_n first_o because_o in_o reality_n tradition_n right_o understand_v be_v the_o same_o thing_n material_o with_o the_o live_a voice_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n essential_a consist_v of_o pastor_n and_o laity_n which_o be_v so_o ample_a that_o it_o include_v all_o imaginable_a authority_n which_o can_v be_v conceive_v to_o be_v in_o a_o church_n second_o because_o in_o the_o way_n of_o generate_a faith_n tradition_n formal_o take_v be_v antecedent_n to_o disc._n 2._o §_o 11._o and_o so_o in_o the_o way_n of_o discourse_n work_v by_o formal_a and_o abstract_a notion_n its_o notion_n must_v be_v presuppose_v and_o its_o certainty_n establish_v before_o the_o notion_n and_o certainty_n of_o faith_n consequent_o of_o faithful_a and_o consequent_o of_o church_n which_o must_v necessary_o be_v a_o congregation_n of_o faithful_a whence_o they_o will_v argue_v very_o preposterous_o who_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o oppose_v church_n against_o tradition_n this_o be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o think_v to_o establish_v the_o house_n by_o overthrow_v the_o foundation_n 14._o none_o can_v in_o reason_n oppose_v the_o authority_n of_o father_n or_o council_n against_o tradition_n this_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o former_a corol._n 13._o in_o regard_n neither_o of_o these_o have_v any_o authority_n but_o as_o representative_n of_o the_o church_n or_o eminent_a member_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o can_v any_o determine_v certain_o what_o be_v a_o father_n or_o council_n disc._n 2._o §_o 11._o till_o the_o notion_n of_o church_n that_o be_v of_o faithful_a that_o be_v of_o faith_n that_o be_v of_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v of_o tradition_n be_v certain_o establish_v 15._o no_o disacknowledger_n of_o tradition_n be_v in_o due_a of_o reason_n but_o in_o courtesy_n only_o to_o be_v allow_v to_o argue_v out_o of_o scripture_n letter_n father_n or_o council_n for_o since_o want_v tradition_n they_o have_v certainty_n of_o none_o of_o those_o as_o be_v prove_v disc._n 2._o §_o 11._o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o disacknowledge_v tradition_n while_o they_o allege_v and_o talk_v of_o these_o they_o allege_v and_o talk_v of_o thing_n themselves_o do_v not_o know_v to_o be_v certain_a wherefore_o it_o be_v too_o great_a a_o condescendence_n and_o courtesy_n in_o catholics_n to_o let_v they_o run_v forward_o descant_v with_o wordish_a discourse_n on_o those_o testimony_n after_o their_o raw_a manner_n since_o they_o may_v just_o take_v their_o advantage_n against_o they_o and_o show_v they_o have_v no_o right_a to_o make_v use_n of_o principle_n which_o their_o own_o ground_n can_v never_o make_v good_a to_o they_o as_o be_v tertullian_n smart_n and_o solid_a way_n de_fw-fr praescr_n haeret._n c._n 15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o 20_o 21._o deny_v they_o the_o use_n of_o scripture_n who_o deny_v the_o church_n which_o will_v save_v many_o a_o airy_a confuse_a discourse_n about_o word_n unapt_a to_o evidence_n any_o thing_n satisfactory_o nor_o can_v the_o right_a of_o a_o opponent_n to_o argue_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la licence_n they_o to_o claim_v this_o favour_n from_o our_o controvertist_n in_o regard_n we_o never_o hold_v that_o scripture_n letter_n hammer_v upon_o by_o criticism_n and_o such_o pretty_a knack_n of_o human_a learning_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n nor_o the_o way_n to_o establish_v it_o but_o only_o as_o interpret_v by_o the_o language_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o consequent_o can_v we_o hold_v it_o capable_a to_o be_v prejudice_v by_o such_o endeavour_n of_o private_a wit_n though_o then_o we_o shall_v allow_v they_o a_o copy_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o consequent_o so_o far_o a_o liberty_n to_o argue_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o we_o yet_o we_o never_o allow_v their_o method_n of_o argue_v from_o it_o as_o efficacious_a either_o to_o build_v or_o evert_v faith_n but_o our_o learned_a controvertist_n ever_o hold_v direct_a contrary_n whence_o in_o case_n they_o clamour_v that_o in_o not_o follow_v their_o wild_a method_n we_o desert_n scripture_n to_o avoid_v which_o calumny_n with_o the_o vulgar_a i_o conceive_v one_o reason_n our_o controvertist_n general_o be_v so_o civil_a to_o they_o as_o to_o cope_v with_o they_o in_o their_o fleight_n way_n the_o unreasonableness_n of_o the_o calumny_n be_v to_o be_v make_v appear_v which_o be_v quick_o do_v not_o their_o unreasonable_a expectation_n to_o be_v satisfy_v 16._o no_o authority_n from_o any_o history_n or_o testimonial_a write_n be_v valid_a against_o the_o force_n of_o tradition_n for_o since_o falsehood_n be_v as_o easy_a to_o be_v write_v or_o print_v as_o truth_n it_o be_v evident_a those_o book_n can_v give_v no_o testimony_n to_o themselves_o that_o what_o they_o express_v be_v certain_o true_a and_o if_o we_o say_v they_o be_v abet_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o other_o book_n the_o same_o question_n recurr_v concern_v they_o in_o what_o age_n soever_o they_o be_v write_v it_o remain_v then_o that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o acceptation_n of_o man_n or_o sense_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o so_o convey_v down_o from_o father_n to_o son_n that_o these_o book_n be_v true_a history_n and_o not_o fable_n which_o give_v they_o any_o authority_n but_o this_o have_v plain_o the_o nature_n of_o tradition_n they_o have_v therefore_o no_o authority_n but_o by_o force_n of_o tradition_n therefore_o they_o can_v have_v no_o possible_a force_n against_o tradition_n since_o if_o tradition_n or_o the_o convey_n down_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n sense_n write_v thus_o universal_o in_o man_n heart_n can_v deceive_v we_o no_o such_o book_n can_v have_v any_o authority_n at_o all_o wherefore_o not_o the_o book_n but_o the_o sense_n write_v in_o man_n heart_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o skill_n of_o the_o author_n of_o those_o book_n upon_o which_o qualification_n the_o truth_n of_o each_o passage_n contain_v in_o those_o book_n be_v build_v be_v to_o be_v allege_v against_o christian_a tradition_n since_o it_o be_v that_o sense_n which_o authorise_v those_o book_n and_o give_v credibility_n to_o those_o passage_n and_o so_o be_v strong_a than_o any_o dead_a testimony_n from_o the_o book_n themselves_o which_o devolve_v into_o this_o that_o only_o some_o great_a tradition_n or_o live_a testimony_n for_o thing_n past_a can_v in_o point_n of_o authority_n be_v pretend_v a_o equal_a match_n to_o christian_a tradition_n or_o competent_a to_o be_v alledg●d_v against_o it_o 17._o no_o tradition_n be_v allege_v or_o alledgeable_a in_o reason_n against_o christian_a tradition_n that_o none_o be_v alledg●d_v be_v evident_a from_o matter_n of_o fact_n for_o the_o adversary_n of_o catholic_n tradition_n never_o pretend_v the_o consent_n or_o constant_a sense_n of_o great_a multitude_n derive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n by_o live_a voice_n that_o at_o such_o a_o time_n former_a tradition_n be_v relinquish_v new_a faith_n introduce_v or_o the_o old_a faith_n change_v or_o abolish_v but_o only_o odd_a end_n or_o scrap_n of_o history_n or_o other_o dead_a testimony_n according_a as_o they_o light_v on_o some_o passage_n which_o seem_v favourable_a to_o they_o or_o may_v
which_o only_o themselves_o know_v and_o be_v conscious_a of_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n nothing_o appear_v why_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o impression_n be_v impossible_a nay_o it_o be_v grant_v possible_a it_o be_v clear_a none_o can_v argue_v against_o that_o inward_a light_n be_v existence_n out_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o inward_a persuasion_n fanatic_n have_v in_o regard_n it_o be_v latent_fw-la and_o unknown_a it_o follow_v then_o that_o the_o way_n to_o conclude_v against_o it_o be_v to_o show_v out_o of_o evident_a principle_n the_o contrary_a to_o these_o inspiration_n to_o be_v truth_n none_o therefore_o as_o plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n testify_v take_v the_o way_n of_o argue_v from_o principle_n absolute_o evident_a or_o demonstrate_v but_o catholics_n or_o the_o follower_n of_o tradition_n and_o they_o effect_v this_o by_o virtue_n of_o tradition_n disc._n 5_o 6_o 8._o it_o follow_v that_o they_o and_o only_o they_o be_v able_a to_o confute_v fanatic_n and_o conclude_v their_o inward_a light_n delusive_a again_o since_o a_o fanatic_a build_v on_o conceit_a experience_n of_o divine_a inspiration_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n to_o convince_v his_o judgement_n without_o produce_v demonstration_n for_o the_o contrary_a a_o task_n only_o performable_a in_o the_o way_n of_o tradition_n which_o be_v enforce_v and_o strengthen_v by_o this_o consideration_n that_o the_o basis_n of_o tradidition_n be_v natural_a knowledge_n direct_o imprint_v by_o his_o sense_n in_o which_o knowledge_n he_o be_v undeceivable_a and_o these_o sensation_n or_o knowledge_n be_v daily_o repeat_v not_o on_o one_o private_a temper_n but_o on_o innumerable_a million_o conspire_v in_o the_o same_o that_o be_v tradition_n be_v build_v on_o almost_o infinite_a daily_a and_o most_o manifest_a experience_n whereas_o the_o conceit_a effect_n of_o inspiration_n or_o his_o strong_a persuasion_n that_o god_n speak_v thus_o inward_o be_v find_v with_o consent_n of_o tenet_n in_o a_o few_o only_o and_o liable_a to_o deceit_n by_o depend_v upon_o fancy_n not_o sense_n as_o appear_v in_o disease_a or_o mad_a person_n and_o the_o fanatic_n contradict_v one_o another_o though_o both_o proceed_n on_o the_o same_o principle_n without_o tradition_n help_n then_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a if_o not_o impossible_a to_o confute_v fanatic_n as_o experience_n also_o testify_v by_o protestant_n be_v force_v to_o recur_n to_o tradidion_n in_o dispute_n with_o they_o though_o very_o easy_a with_o it_o or_o by_o mean_n of_o it_o 22._o there_o be_v no_o argue_v against_o tradition_n without_o question_v the_o constancy_n of_o every_o species_n in_o nature_n that_o be_v the_o certainty_n of_o whole_a nature_n for_o see_v man_n nature_n be_v as_o necessary_o fit_a to_o receive_v the_o direct_a impression_n of_o object_n on_o his_o soul_n that_o be_v natural_a knowledge_n and_o as_o necessary_o determine_v to_o work_v for_o a_o motive_n or_o reason_n good_a or_o bad_a as_o fire_n be_v to_o heat_n or_o water_n to_o wet_v and_o this_o absolute_o and_o always_o abstract_v from_o disease_n incapacitate_v he_o to_o use_v his_o sense_n or_o his_o fancy_n and_o both_o these_o spring_n out_o of_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o his_o nature_n as_o rational_a or_o of_o such_o a_o species_n which_o original_a corruption_n hinder_v not_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v as_o fit_v for_o those_o operation_n and_o consequent_o will_v as_o frequent_o perform_v they_o as_o fire_n burn_v water_n wet_a fruit-tree_n bear_v fruit_n or_o any_o other_o species_n in_o nature_n do_v its_o ptope_a effect_n that_o be_v general_o and_o only_o rare_o and_o contingent_o fail_v unless_o the_o author_n of_o nature_n order_n the_o whole_a course_n of_o it_o worse_o for_o man_n than_o for_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o say_v and_o contrary_a to_o experience_n since_o we_o find_v a_o course_n of_o supernatural_n on_o foot_n and_o that_o they_o comfort_n and_o strengthen_v man_n true_a nature_n as_o have_v be_v former_o declare_v less_o liable_a than_o be_v the_o human_a species_n to_o contingency_n in_o those_o its_o natural_a operation_n than_o any_o other_o kind_n be_v wherefore_o see_v tradition_n certainty_n be_v ground_v upon_o direct_a natural_a knowledge_n and_o its_o indefectiveness_n on_o mankind_n incapableness_n to_o act_v without_o some_o motive_n to_o argue_v against_o it_o be_v to_o question_v these_o that_o be_v the_o constancy_n of_o the_o best_a and_o best-supported_n species_n in_o nature_n and_o a_o fortiori_fw-la the_o constancy_n of_o the_o rest_n note_v here_o that_o all_o the_o argument_n bring_v by_o witty_a reasoner_n against_o tradition_n be_v fetch_v from_o the_o contingency_n of_o some_o one_o or_o some_o few_o particular_n whence_o by_o a_o wild_a kind_n of_o rove_a way_n they_o will_v conclude_v the_o defectibleness_n of_o the_o generality_n or_o of_o the_o entire_a species_n but_o because_o it_o look_v too_o palpable_o inconsequent_a in_o logical_a form_n to_o say_v a_o few_o can_v err_v ergo_fw-la all_o therefore_o they_o use_v to_o bring_v it_o in_o with_o a_o why_o not_o so_o that_o all_o the_o arguer_n against_o tradition_n from_o natural_a reason_n oppose_v direct_o any_o constancy_n in_o the_o species_n or_o generality_n and_o so_o be_v destroyer_n of_o natural_a certainty_n and_o of_o their_o own_o argument_n to_o boot_v 23._o there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o argue_v at_o all_o against_o tradition_n right_o understand_v or_o the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n with_o any_o show_n of_o reason_n for_o since_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o scripture_n copy_n or_o letter_n be_v in_o the_o whole_a and_o every_o tittle_n uncertain_a disc._n 2_o and_o 4._o without_o tradition_n as_o also_o that_o the_o write_n of_o father_n council_n history_n and_o of_o any_o write_v or_o dead_a testimony_n whatever_o corol._n 14_o and_o 16._o be_v utter_o unauthorise_v otherwise_o than_o by_o mean_n of_o tradition_n and_o that_o no_o live_a testimony_n or_o tradition_n be_v alledgable_a against_o the_o tradition_n we_o speak_v of_o or_o catholic_n tradition_n corol._n 13._o and_o 17._o nor_o any_o pretend_a instance_n of_o tradition●s_n fail_v have_v force_v but_o by_o its_o be_v faithful_o convey_v down_o by_o tradition_n and_o depend_v on_o tradition_n for_o its_o certainty_n corol._n 19_o and_o all_o argument_n from_o natural_a reason_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o they_o destroy_v all_o certainty_n in_o that_o matter_n while_o level_v against_o tradition_n corol._n 18._o &_o 22._o it_o follow_v that_o no_o argument_n from_o any_o authority_n public_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n nor_o yet_o from_o intrinsical_v medium_n fetch_v from_o second_o cause_n in_o nature_n can_v bear_v any_o show_n against_o tradition_n nor_o yet_o from_o private_a effect_n pretend_v from_o the_o first_o cause_n call_v inspiration_n or_o light_n of_o the_o private_a spirit_n corol._n 21._o for_o beside_o what_o have_v be_v conclude_v for_o this_o point_n however_o this_o preten●e_n may_v make_v the_o first_o syll●●gism_n yet_o when_o it_o come_v to_o be_v prove_v that_o be_v make_v appear_v outward_o that_o the_o first_o cause_n inspire_v thus_o or_o thus_o no_o extraordinary_a effect_n proper_a to_o that_o cause_n as_o miracle_n be_v producible_a their_o argue_v or_o proof_n be_v at_o a_o end_n however_o their_o inward_a adhesion_n stand_v there_o be_v then_o no_o other_o argument_n imaginable_a but_o what_o be_v fetch_v from_o authority_n live_v or_o dead_a or_o else_o from_o effect_n or_o experience_n testifiable_a by_o those_o authority_n or_o from_o proper_a effect_n or_o cause_n in_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o natural_a thing_n or_o from_o extraordinary_a private_a and_o unseen_a pretend_a effect_n of_o the_o first_o cause_n and_o none_o of_o these_o bear_n any_o show_n against_o tradition_n it_o be_v evident_a there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o argue_v against_o tradition_n right_o understand_v or_o the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n with_o any_o show_n of_o reason_n 24._o tradition_n be_v the_o first_o principle_n in_o the_o way_n of_o authority_n as_o it_o engage_v for_o matter_n of_o fact_n long_o ago_o past_a for_o see_v that_o be_v the_o first_o principle_n in_o any_o knowledge_n into_o which_o all_o knowledge_n in_o that_o kind_n be_v resolve_v to_o establish_v their_o certainty_n and_o all_o ptetended_a authority_n for_o any_o matter_n of_o fact_n long_o ago_o past_a corol._n 16._o and_o consequent_o all_o knowledge_n cause_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o they_o be_v resolve_v final_o into_o tradition_n and_o depend_v on_o it_o for_o their_o certainty_n it_o follow_v that_o tradition_n be_v the_o very_a first_o principle_n in_o the_o way_n of_o authority_n as_o it_o undertake_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o matter_n of_o fact_n long_o ago_o past_a 25._o tradition_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o tradition_n that_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n before_o our_o time_n be_v self-evident_a to_o all_o those_o who_o can_v need_v
itself_o to_o omit_v here_o that_o he_o make_v it_o the_o very_a temper_n of_o a_o christian_a mind_n not_o to_o question_v tradition_n he_o maintain_v continuance_n of_o time_n to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o weaken_v the_o certainty_n of_o traditionary_a point_n that_o it_o contribute_v to_o strengthen_v they_o more_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o church_n doctrine_n spread_v by_o time_n and_o so_o the_o sway_n of_o tradition_n descent_n be_v ample_a beside_o that_o every_o new_a degree_n of_o continuance_n establish_v its_o title_n to_o possession_n and_o make_v it_o hainouser_n to_o revolt_v from_o it_o and_o effect_n show_v our_o discourse_n true_a for_o there_o be_v more_o variety_n of_o heresy_n that_o be_v renouncer_n of_o tradition_n in_o the_o first_o 400_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n than_o we_o read_v of_o in_o any_o 400_o year_n since_o nor_o that_o we_o may_v use_v a_o familiar_a instance_n in_o human_a tradition_n do_v i_o conceive_v any_o man_n live_v more_o doubt_n now_o of_o mahomet_n or_o julius_n caesar_n existence_n than_o within_o a_o 100_o year_n after_o they_o live_v 15._o a_o few_o note_n well_o weigh_v will_v strengthen_v the_o force_n of_o these_o allegation_n which_o even_o at_o first_o sight_n seem_v to_o look_v very_o favourable_o on_o our_o cause_n i_o mind_v my_o reader_n then_o first_o that_o almost_o every_o citation_n allege_v be_v of_o council_n or_o father_n speak_v direct_o against_o heretic_n that_o be_v in_o such_o circumstance_n as_o put_v they_o to_o declare_v what_o fix_v they_o catholic_n and_o what_o make_v the_o other_o heretic_n second_o that_o though_o some_o father_n and_o council_n speak_v high_o of_o scripture_n as_o that_o it_o contain_v all_o faith_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v first_o to_o be_v mark_v whether_o they_o speak_v of_o scripture_n sence_v or_o as_o yet_o to_o be_v senc●t_o and_o if_o the_o late_a by_o who_o or_o whether_o any_o father_n say_v that_o scripture_n wrought_v upon_o by_o private_a interpretation_n and_o human_a wit_n be_v apt_a to_o ascertain_v faith_n or_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o true_a point_n between_o the_o renouncer_n of_o tradition_n and_o we_o three_o they_o shall_v observe_v it_o frequent_v in_o father_n to_o force_v heretic_n to_o accept_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n from_o those_o who_o give_v they_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n and_o very_o frequent_a to_o sense_n that_o letter_n even_o when_o dark_a by_o tradition_n but_o never_o to_o bend_v tradition_n to_o the_o outward_a show_v the_o scripture_n letter_n seem_v to_o bear_v as_o interpret_v by_o human_a skill_n or_o to_o say_v universal_a tradition_n be_v insufficient_a or_o uncertain_a unless_o the_o scripture_n letter_n thus_o interpret_v come_v to_o clear_a or_o assist_v it_o last_o it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v hold_v scripture_n thus_o interpretable_a the_o rule_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v notorious_a that_o most_o heretic_n against_o who_o they_o write_v hold_v it_o they_o and_o so_o have_v they_o hold_v scripture_n thus_o interpret_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n they_o can_v not_o have_v hold_v they_o heretic_n since_o they_o adhere_v stiff_o to_o that_o rule_n or_o root_n of_o faith_n however_o they_o may_v err_v in_o many_o particular_a tenet_n not_o to_o repeat_v how_o all_o the_o property_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v urter_o incompetent_a to_o scripture_n letter_n this_o do_v all_o the_o testimony_n for_o scripture_n against_o tradition_n lose_v their_o edge_n that_o be_v if_o my_o discourse_n also_o hold_v the_o test_n it_o will_v appear_v by_o way_n of_o fact_n as_o it_o do_v before_o by_o argument_n that_o there_o be_v neither_o reason_n nor_o authority_n against_o tradition_n so_o that_o i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v but_o to_o show_v that_o our_o church_n at_o present_a ground_n her_o faith_n on_o tradition_n as_o former_o which_o do_v it_o follow_v all_o the_o substance_n of_o my_o forego_v discourse_n be_v but_o a_o explication_n of_o our_o church_n sense_n 16._o to_o know_v our_o church_n sense_n in_o this_o point_n we_o will_v not_o fetch_v our_o testimony_n from_o private_a author_n as_o be_v the_o protestant_n mode_n when_o they_o will_v affix_v any_o thing_n upon_o she_o but_o we_o will_v attend_v to_o what_o her_o own_o live_a voice_n pronounce_v in_o her_o late_a famous_a representative_a the_o council_n of_o trent_n where_o in_o every_o session_n definitive_a of_o faith_n it_o profess_v to_o follow_v tradition_n either_o in_o most_o express_a or_o equivalent_a term_n as_o session_n 4_o the_o holy_a synod_n clear_o see_v that_o this_o truth_n and_o discipline_n christ_n doctrine_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o write_a book_n and_o tradition_n without_o writing_n which_o receive_v by_o the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n own_o mouth_n or_o from_o the_o very_a apostle_n the_o holy_a ghost_n dictate_v as_o it_o be_v deliver_v by_o hand_n per_fw-la manus_fw-la traditae_fw-la have_v come_v down_o to_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o again_o also_o the_o tradition_n both_o belong_v to_o faith_n and_o manner_n as_o dictate_v oral_o by_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o conserve_v by_o continval_n succession_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n &c._n &c._n session_n 5._o the_o holy_a council_n follow_v the_o judgement_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n ibid._n §_o 4._o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n where_o ever_o diffuse_v have_v always_o understand_v it_o for_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o rule_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n session_n 6._o it_o profess_v to_o follow_v that_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n teach_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v and_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o holy_a ghost_n suggest_v perpetual_o or_o interrupt_o retain_v session_n 7._o the_o holy_a synod_n adhere_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o consent_n of_o council_n and_o father_n session_n 13._o the_o sound_n and_o sincere_a doctrine_n which_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v ever_o keep_v and_o will_v ever_o keep_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o again_o for_o so_o all_o our_o ancestor_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n most_o open_o have_v profess_v and_o yet_o again_o cap._n 3._o this_o faith_n be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n so_o cap._n 4._o it_o be_v ever_o hold_v in_o god_n church_n more_o such_o like_a expression_n be_v find_v in_o the_o same_o session_n but_o to_o proceed_v session_n 14._o chap._n 1._o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o father_n ever_o understand_v etc._n etc._n chap._n 5._o the_o church_n of_o god_n never_o teach_v nor_o hold_v etc._n etc._n chap._n 5._o the_o universal_a church_n ever_o understand_v that_o etc._n etc._n chap._n 7._o it_o be_v ever_o hold_v in_o god_n church_n chap._n 8._o it_o be_v perpetvally_o commend_v by_o our_o father_n to_o christian_a people_n no_o catholic_n ever_o hold_v etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o same_o session_n concern_v extreme_a unction_n allege_v s._n james_n his_o text_n it_o add_v by_o which_o word_n as_o the_o church_n have_v learned_a by_o tradition_n receive_v down_o by_o hand_n he_o teach_v etc._n etc._n and_o can._n 3._o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n ever_o understand_v from_o the_o beginning_n etc._n etc._n can._n 6._o which_o the_o catholic_n church_n ever_o observe_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o do_v observe_v etc._n etc._n session_n 21._o chap._n 1._o the_o council_n profess_v to_o follow_v the_o judgement_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n 2._o it_o declare_v that_o this_o power_n have_v perpetvally_o be_v in_o the_o church_n session_n 22._o that_o the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n may_v be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n ibid._n cap._n 1._o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n ever_o understand_v and_o teach_v chap._n 1._o according_a to_o apostolical_a tradition_n session_n 23_o holy_a write_n show_v it_o and_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n ever_o teach_v it_o chap._n 2._o they_o be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v in_o use_n from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o church_n session_n 24._o the_o holy_a father_n council_n and_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n have_v always_o teach_v and_o speak_v of_o some_o error_n it_o pronounce_v they_o different_a from_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o from_o the_o custom_n approve_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n session_n 25._o the_o catholic_n church_n instruct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v out_o of_o sacred_a write_n and_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n traditam_fw-la deliver_v from_o the_o first_o or_o primitive_a time_n of_o christian_a religion_n etc._n etc._n more_o expression_n of_o the_o like_a strain_n be_v find_v in_o this_o session_n and_o to_o close_v up_o all_o in_o their_o acclamation_n they_o use_v this_o
form_n of_o word_n this_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o bless_a peter_n this_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n this_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o orthodox_n from_o which_o testimony_n note_v we_o 17._o first_o that_o the_o council_n in_o every_o session_n not_o one_o except_v where_o point_v of_o faith_n be_v handle_v constant_o profess_v to_o follow_v tradition_n second_o it_o lay_v claim_v perpetual_o to_o vninterruptedness_n of_o this_o tradition_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n ever_o always_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n from_o the_o beginning_n from_o the_o apostle_n have_v come_v down_o by_o hand_n to_o we_o the_o church_n have_v always_o understand_v hold_v open_o profess_v teach_v have_v ever_o keep_v and_o will_v ever_o keep_v perpetual_o commend_v by_o our_o father_n have_v learn_v by_o tradition_n receive_v down_o by_o hand_n have_v ever_o observe_v and_o such_o like_a plain_o show_v that_o this_o persuasion_n of_o our_o faith_n descent_n uninterrupted_o be_v deep_o and_o unanimous_o root_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n which_o strengthen_v our_o doctrine_n disc._n 8._o §_o 2._o and_o 3._o 3_o it_o make_v the_o suggestion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o sanctity_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a efficacious_a to_o perpetuate_v the_o delivery_n of_o receive_a doctrine_n see_v sess._n 6._o decreto_fw-la de_fw-la justificatione_n sess._n 13._o de_fw-fr ss_z euchar._n sacramento_n and_o many_o other_o place_n the_o very_a point_n i_o go_v about_o to_o explicate_v in_o my_o 9_o discourse_n 4_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o though_o it_o mention_n the_o holy_a scripture_n also_o with_o tradition_n yet_o this_o be_v both_o very_o rare_o and_o when_o it_o do_v so_o it_o only_o express_v that_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o they_o but_o when_o it_o bring_v place_n of_o scripture_n to_o ground_n definition_n upon_o it_o perpetual_o profess_v to_o interpret_v they_o by_o tradition_n which_o be_v most_o evident_a both_o by_o its_o decree_a this_o in_o common_a sess._n 4._o that_o none_o dare_v to_o interpret_v holy_a scripture_n against_o the_o sense_n which_o our_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n have_v hold_v and_o do_v hold_v mean_v that_o sense_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v the_o rule_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n by_o see_v corol._n 30._o as_o also_o by_o several_a instance_n sess._n 5._o §_o 4._o sess._n 14._o can._n 3._o sess._n 22._o cap._n 1._o and_o to_o omit_v other_o in_o that_o most_o remarkable_a pla●e_n sess._n 14._o in_o which_o after_o the_o text_n of_o s._n iames●lledged_v ●lledg'd_z for_o extreme_a unction_n the_o council_n subjoin_v in_o which_o word_n as_o the_o church_n have_v learn_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n receive_v down_o by_o hand_n be_v teach_v etc._n etc._n where_o tradition_n be_v most_o evident_o make_v the_o rule_n which_o instruct_v and_o guide_v the_o church_n in_o interpret_n scripture_n and_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o the_o council_n no_o where_o ground_n any_o definition_n on_o scripture_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n she_o ground_n her_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n on_o tradition_n which_o devolve_v into_o this_o that_o the_o council_n make_v tradition_n her_o only_a rule_n to_o know_v certain_o christ_n sense_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o proper_a speak_n the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n 18._o but_o why_o then_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n make_v use_v of_o at_o all_o by_o the_o council_n and_o that_o so_o solemn_o nay_o and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v note_v constant_o put_v before_o tradition_n to_o satisfy_v full_o this_o difficulty_n it_o be_v not_o the_o proper_a season_n at_o present_a yet_o be_v a_o good_a point_n and_o worth_a clear_n i_o will_v not_o total_o neglect_v it_o we_o may_v observe_v then_o that_o when_o we_o read_v any_o book_n write_v by_o a_o author_n we_o much_o esteem_v but_o yet_o such_o a_o book_n as_o require_v study_v aristotle_n for_o example_n or_o some_o other_o such_o who_o we_o hold_v scientifical_a we_o sometime_o hope_v well_o as_o it_o be_v when_o we_o apply_v our_o own_o industry_n to_o find_v out_o his_o meaning_n and_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o respect_n for_o what_o we_o conceive_v to_o be_v his_o sense_n yet_o his_o authority_n take_v not_o full_a hold_n of_o our_o understanding_n by_o reason_n the_o way_n we_o take_v be_v not_o evident_o convictive_a that_o this_o be_v his_o certain_a sense_n but_o if_o the_o point_n he_o write_v on_o be_v first_o clear_v to_o we_o through_o a_o scientifical_a discourse_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n make_v by_o some_o interpreter_n verse_v in_o his_o doctrine_n and_o perfect_o acquaint_v with_o his_o meaning_n we_o have_v as_o it_o be_v new_a eye_n give_v we_o to_o look_v deep_o and_o thorough_o into_o his_o sense_n and_o by_o this_o security_n of_o arrive_v at_o it_o his_o authority_n in_o case_n we_o high_o esteem_v it_o have_v now_o its_o full_a force_n upon_o we_o to_o strengthen_v our_o assent_n according_a to_o the_o degree_n of_o power_n it_o have_v upon_o our_o understanding_n now_o what_o a_o well-skilled_a and_o insighted_a interpreter_n or_o scientifical_a explicater_v of_o the_o point_n be_v to_o such_o a_o author_n the_o same_o be_v tradition_n to_o scripture_n for_o this_o bring_v down_o certain_o christ_n sense_n in_o every_o point_n of_o faith_n it_o easy_o and_o secure_o guide_v we_o to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n in_o those_o passage_n which_o concern_v such_o a_o point_n whereas_o the_o wordish_a way_n of_o grammar_n and_o criticism_n be_v evident_a by_o principle_n to_o be_v ambiguous_a and_o by_o experience_n to_o lead_v man_n into_o different_a sense_n it_o can_v never_o satisfy_v we_o thorough_o that_o the_o sense_n we_o arrive_v at_o by_o this_o method_n be_v infallible_o the_o true_a one_o or_o christ_n and_o so_o never_o engage_v certain_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o scripture_n thus_o interpret_v be_v of_o sleight_n force_n and_o at_o best_a good_a only_o for_o ecclesiastical_a rhetoric_n or_o sermon_n where_o the_o concern_n be_v not_o much_o if_o the_o preacher_n miss_v in_o this_o particular_a passage_n so_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o point_n he_o preach_v on_o or_o his_o text_n be_v true_o christ_n doctrine_n nor_o be_v scripture_n thus_o interpret_v even_o a_o competent_a proof_n in_o the_o science_n of_o school-divinity_n as_o be_v uncertain_a and_o so_o unapt_a to_o beget_v science_n whence_o intelligent_a divine_n quote_v and_o build_n on_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v suppose_v to_o judge_v the_o sense_n they_o build_v on_o to_o be_v the_o church_n and_o so_o they_o be_v presume_v to_o go_v to_o work_v as_o faithful_a or_o part_n of_o ecclesia_fw-la docens_fw-la or_o else_o they_o lay_v true_a science_n first_o which_o be_v ever_o agreeable_a to_o faith_n and_o so_o when_o any_o text_n concern_v a_o demonstrate_v point_n they_o know_v by_o science_n what_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o that_o point_n must_v be_v much_o less_o be_v scripture_n wordish_o interpret_v apt_a to_o build_v faith_n on_o the_o unwaveringness_n of_o which_o kind_n of_o assent_n must_v be_v ground_v and_o secure_a in_o the_o principle_n which_o beget_v it_o and_o not_o mere_o actual_o such_o as_o it_o be_v by_o accident_n whereas_o interpretation_n thus_o make_v faith_n principle_n in_o this_o case_n be_v liable_a to_o possible_a if_o not_o probable_a mistake_n this_o will_v be_v clear_a by_o a_o parallel_n make_v by_o a_o learned_a author_n worth_a insert_v because_o it_o strengthen_v our_o discourse_n by_o a_o new_a consideration_n let_v a_o critic_n and_o a_o skill_a carpenter_n read_v vitruvius_n his_o book_n of_o architecture_n the_o critic_n have_v but_o a_o dim_a dry_a and_o uncertain_a conceit_n of_o what_o he_o read_v as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o the_o carpenter_n or_o architect_n by_o reason_n of_o some_o principle_n and_o practice_n he_o have_v already_o of_o those_o matter_n understand_v he_o more_o thorough_o and_o make_v lively_a and_o firm_a conceit_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o excellency_n of_o what_o he_o write_v such_o be_v the_o practical_a way_n of_o know_v christ_n sense_n or_o tradition_n to_o the_o interpret_n scripture_n use_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o critical_a method_n affect_v by_o other_o in_o a_o word_n tradition_n give_v we_o christ_n sense_n that_o be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o letter_n ascertaind_v to_o our_o hand_n which_o therefore_o must_v needs_o move_v the_o letter_n its_o body_n natural_o the_o other_o way_n take_v the_o dead_a letter_n and_o endeavour_n to_o move_v it_o artificial_o to_o counterfeit_v that_o life_n which_o it_o true_o want_v 19_o to_o apply_v this_o discourse_n to_o our_o matter_n in_o hand_n tradition_n secure_v to_o we_o the_o scripture_n letter_n true_o significative_a of_o christ_n sense_n and_o also_o the_o
as_o it_o be_v the_o flower_n of_o mankind_n which_o guide_v themselves_o by_o perfect_a reason_n can_v hold_v nothing_o or_o have_v no_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o church_n must_v only_o be_v make_v up_o of_o ignorant_a and_o undiscerning_a person_n which_o will_v make_v her_o little_a better_o than_o a_o congregation_n of_o fanatic_n 15._o especial_o the_o church_n have_v many_o adversary_n skill_v in_o natural_a science_n who_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o oppose_v she_o all_o they_o can_v and_o conquer_v she_o too_o can_v they_o take_v any_o just_a advantage_n against_o she_o and_o no_o great_a advantage_n be_v possible_a to_o be_v gain_v or_o more_o deadly_a wound_n to_o be_v give_v she_o than_o to_o prove_v her_o faith_n uncertain_a which_o be_v do_v by_o show_v the_o ground_n of_o it_o as_o far_o as_o concern_v our_o knowledge_n that_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o mean_n to_o come_v to_o faith_n possible_a to_o be_v false_a for_o this_o at_o once_o enervate_v her_o government_n vilify_v her_o sacrament_n weaken_v all_o the_o motive_n to_o the_o love_n of_o heaven_n which_o she_o propose_v and_o by_o consequence_n quite_o enfeeble_v the_o vigour_n of_o christian_a life_n or_o rather_o this_o make_v manifest_a by_o reason_n of_o temptation_n to_o the_o love_n of_o creature_n perpetual_o and_o on_o all_o side_n besiege_v we_o endanger_v to_o extinguish_v it_o utter_o and_o last_o make_v christian_n the_o most_o ridiculous_a people_n in_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v such_o high_a mystery_n above_o their_o reason_n upon_o uncertain_a ground_n it_o be_v manifest_a therefore_o that_o the_o only_a safeguard_n and_o all_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o church_n and_o christian_a religion_n be_v place_v in_o the_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v make_v therefore_o and_o ordain_v to_o ascertain_v faith_n that_o it_o it_o have_v in_o it_o what_o be_v fit_a for_o this_o end_n that_o be_v it_o be_v of_o its_o own_o nature_n absolute_o certain_a that_o be_v absolute_a certainty_n be_v find_v in_o the_o nature_n and_o notion_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o be_v signify_v or_o mean_v by_o those_o word_n thorough_o understand_v 16._o and_o last_o faith_n be_v a_o virtue_n main_o conduce_v to_o bliss_n as_o be_v see_v §_o 8._o and_o its_o influence_n towards_o bliss_n which_o we_o call_v its_o merit_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o it_o make_v we_o submit_v our_o understanding_n to_o the_o divine_a veracity_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n adhere_v unwaver_o to_o such_o truth_n as_o raise_v we_o to_o heaven_n so_o that_o the_o divine_a authority_n apply_v be_v the_o principal_a cause_n or_o motive_n of_o this_o submission_n assent_n or_o adhesion_n and_o every_o cause_n produce_v its_o effect_n better_o and_o strongly_a by_o how_o much_o the_o near_o and_o close_o it_o be_v apply_v and_o all_o the_o application_n of_o it_o to_o we_o consist_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o derive_v down_o to_o we_o those_o doctrine_n christ_n teach_v and_o to_o assure_v we_o that_o christ_n say_v they_o and_o the_o application_n of_o a_o thing_n close_o to_o a_o judge_a power_n be_v perform_v by_o certify_v it_o which_o make_v it_o sink_v into_o it_o &_o become_v a_o intimate_a act_n of_o that_o power_n whereas_o uncertainty_n can_v only_o admit_v it_o to_o swim_v as_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o surface_n of_o the_o soul_n much_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o bare_a proposal_n or_o simple_a apprehension_n or_o at_o best_a as_o a_o probability_n not_o have_v weight_n enough_o of_o motive_n to_o settle_v deep_a into_o its_o solid_a substance_n which_o be_v cognoscitive_a and_o so_o become_v there_o a_o fix_a judgement_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o virtue_n of_o faith_n and_o its_o merit_n be_v incomparable_o advantage_v by_o the_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o very_o feeble_a and_o inefficacious_a without_o it_o this_o rule_n then_o must_v be_v absolutely-certain_a of_o its_o own_o nature_n that_o be_v the_o notion_n of_o absolutely-certain_a be_v involve_v in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 17._o sum_v up_o then_o the_o full_a account_n of_o our_o discourse_n hitherto_o it_o amount_v to_o this_o that_o out_o of_o the_o genuine_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n rule_v which_o as_o use_v by_o we_o denote_v a_o intellectual_a rule_n &_o much_o more_o out_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n faith_n it_o be_v clear_o evince_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n must_v have_v these_o several_a condition_n namely_o it_o must_v be_v plain_a and_o self-evident_a as_o to_o its_o existence_n to_o all_o §_o 3_o 4_o 9_o &_o 10._o &_o evidenceable_a as_o to_o its_o rule_v power_n to_o enquirer_n even_o the_o rude_a vulgar_a §_o 5._o &_o 11._o apt_a to_o settle_v &_o justify_v undoubting_a person_n §_o 12._o to_o satisfy_v full_o the_o most_o sceptical_a dissenter_n §_o 13._o and_o rational_a doubter_n §_o 14._o and_o to_o convince_v the_o most_o obstinate_a and_o acute_a adversary_n §_o 15._o build_v upon_o unmoveable_a ground_n that_o be_v certain_a in_o itself_o §_o 6._o 15_o 16._o and_o absolute_o ascertainable_a to_o we_o §_o 5_o 11_o 13_o 14._o second_o discourse_n show_v the_o two_o first_o property_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n utter_o incompetent_a to_o scripture_n 1._o have_v attain_v so_o clear_a a_o description_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o acquaintance_n with_o it_o by_o particular_a mark_n we_o may_v with_o reason_n conceive_v good_a hope_n of_o know_v it_o when_o we_o meet_v it_o especial_o not_o have_v a_o great_a crowd_n from_o which_o we_o be_v to_o single_a it_o out_o the_o pretender_n to_o that_o title_n be_v very_o few_o and_o indeed_o but_o two_o be_v own_v namely_o tradition_n and_o scripture_n though_o if_o we_o look_v narrow_o into_o it_o the_o private_a spirit_n private_a reason_n testimony_n of_o father_n or_o whatsoever_o else_o be_v hold_v the_o ascertainer_n of_o scripture_n sense_n ought_v to_o have_v a_o place_n among_o the_o pretender_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n since_o it_o be_v those_o which_o be_v think_v to_o give_v the_o relier_n on_o they_o all_o the_o security_n they_o have_v of_o god_n sense_n that_o be_v of_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o be_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v to_o they_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n 2._o but_o to_o speak_v to_o they_o in_o their_o own_o language_n who_o say_v scripture_n be_v their_o rule_n we_o must_v premise_v this_o note_n that_o they_o can_v mean_v by_o scripture_n the_o sense_n of_o it_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v know_v for_o those_o they_o confess_v be_v the_o very_a point_n of_o faith_n of_o which_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o ascertain_v we_o when_o they_o say_v then_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n they_o can_v only_o mean_v by_o the_o word_n scripture_n that_o book_n not_o yet_o sence_v or_o interpret_v but_o as_o yet_o to_o be_v sence_v that_o be_v such_o and_o such_o character_n in_o a_o book_n with_o their_o aptness_n to_o signify_v to_o they_o assure_o god_n mind_n or_o ascertain_v they_o of_o their_o faith_n for_o abstract_v from_o the_o sense_n or_o actual_a signification_n of_o those_o word_n there_o be_v nothing_o imaginable_a leave_v but_o those_o character_n with_o their_o aptness_n to_o signify_v it_o this_o understand_v let_v we_o apply_v now_o the_o property_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o scripture_n letter_n that_o we_o may_v see_v how_o they_o will_v fit_v 3._o and_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o occurr_n be_v its_o existence_n or_o a_o est_fw-la that_o be_v whether_o those_o book_n pretend_v to_o be_v god_n word_n be_v indeed_o scripture_n that_o be_v write_v by_o man_n divine_o inspire_v of_o which_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a the_o very_o rude_a sort_n can_v be_v certain_a by_o self-evidence_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v easy_o evidenceable_a to_o those_o doubter_n that_o be_v the_o ordinary_a sort_n of_o the_o vulgar_a by_o any_o skill_n they_o be_v capable_a of_o nor_o even_o to_o more_o curious_a and_o speculative_a scarcher_n but_o by_o so_o deep_a a_o inspection_n into_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o as_o shall_v discover_v such_o secret_n that_o philosophy_n and_o human_a industry_n can_v never_o have_v arrive_v to_o beside_o all_o the_o seem_a contradiction_n must_v be_v solve_v ere_o they_o can_v out_o of_o the_o bare_a nature_n of_o the_o letter_n conclude_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v of_o god_n endite_v and_o so_o worthy_a to_o be_v a_o rule_n to_o solve_v which_o literal_o plain_o and_o satisfactory_o the_o memory_n of_o so_o many_o particular_n which_o make_v they_o clear_a to_o those_o of_o the_o age_n in_o which_o they_o be_v write_v and_o the_o matter_n know_v must_v needs_o be_v so_o wear_v out_o by_o tract_n of_o time_n that_o it_o be_v
multitude_n of_o knower_n if_o no_o possible_a consideration_n can_v awaken_v in_o our_o reason_n a_o doubt_n that_o they_o conspire_v to_o deceive_v we_o now_o in_o the_o way_n of_o tradition_n all_o deliverer_n or_o immediate_a forefather_n be_v knower_n as_o appear_v in_o those_o who_o immediate_o hear_v the_o apostle_n all_o the_o knowledge_n requisite_a be_v of_o what_o they_o be_v teach_v and_o practise_v it_o according_o all_o their_o life_n of_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a the_o rude_a person_n shall_v be_v ignorant_a who_o ever_o have_v any_o effect_n of_o such_o a_o teach_v wrought_v upon_o he_o nor_o can_v any_o unless_o their_o brain_n rove_v wild_o or_o be_v unsettled_a even_o to_o the_o degree_n of_o madness_n suspect_v deceit_n where_o such_o multitude_n unanimous_o agree_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n look_v serious_o when_o they_o speak_v act_n themselves_o and_o practice_n according_o and_o show_v in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o their_o carriage_n that_o they_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v themselves_o and_o to_o save_v other_o who_o they_o thus_o instruct_v by_o rely_v on_o this_o truth_n that_o their_o forefather_n thus_o teach_v they_o which_o amount_v to_o this_o that_o nature_n or_o common_a reason_n at_o unaware_o steal_v into_o they_o a_o solid_a apprehension_n that_o tradition_n be_v of_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o nature_n and_o so_o that_o while_o father_n thus_o teach_v child_n it_o be_v ever_o such_o that_o be_v that_o tradition_n be_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o convey_v down_o faith_n which_o be_v all_o we_o study_v to_o evince_v at_o present_a i_o may_v add_v that_o nature_n tell_v they_o by_o their_o own_o experience_n that_o parent_n general_o will_v be_v apt_a to_o teach_v their_o child_n what_o themselves_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v good_a and_o true_a &_o needful_a to_o their_o eternal_a salvation_n their_o natural_a thought_n will_v lead_v they_o by_o a_o downright_a procedure_n to_o judge_v that_o tradition_n be_v ever_o in_o some_o considerable_a body_n of_o deliverer_n who_o stick_v to_o it_o and_o own_a it_o and_o that_o those_o have_v true_a faith_n or_o true_o that_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o the_o first_o planter_n of_o christianity_n teach_v but_o of_o this_o point_n more_o hereafter_o 10._o if_o it_o be_v object_v that_o this_o multitude_n of_o plain_a honest-meaning_n soul_n be_v as_o much_o justify_v for_o believe_a scripture_n i_o answer_v that_o if_o you_o mean_v their_o faith_n conceive_v to_o be_v find_v in_o scripture_n or_o a_o determinate_a sense_n of_o scripture_n letter_n it_o can_v with_o any_o show_n of_o reason_n be_v pretend_v that_o they_o be_v as_o much_o justifiable_a for_o believe_v any_o set_v aside_o tradition_n help_n for_o without_o this_o it_o total_o depend_v on_o the_o inward_a judgement_n fancy_n or_o skill_n of_o man_n which_o they_o be_v unqualify_v to_o judge_v of_o not_o on_o open_a verdict_n of_o sense_n to_o wield_v the_o certainty_n or_o uncertainty_n of_o which_o lie_v clear_o within_o the_o reach_n of_o their_o common_a reason_n and_o as_o for_o scripture_n letter_n they_o can_v possible_o be_v justify_v in_o reason_n for_o believe_v even_o the_o substantial_a truth_n of_o it_o without_o tradition_n assist_v hand_n and_o preserve_a care_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v the_o same_o because_o the_o common_a course_n of_o human_a experience_n tell_v they_o that_o judgement_n or_o opinion_n often_o disagree_v but_o their_o plain_a sensation_n especial_o if_o frequent_o repeat_v never_o whence_o a_o jury_n of_o the_o plain_a high-shoe_n will_v upon_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o sight_n of_o six_o witness_n without_o more_o ado_n condemn_v a_o malefactor_n but_o not_o upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o thousand_o man_n if_o a_o testimony_n ground_v on_o sense_n be_v not_o bring_v now_o take_v away_o tradition_n and_o all_o ground_n from_o certain_a sense_n fail_v we_o either_o for_o the_o meaning_n or_o even_a letter_n of_o scripture_n and_o all_o be_v leave_v to_o man_n judgement_n build_v on_o latent_fw-la skill_n or_o fancy_n or_o at_o least_o on_o sense_n liable_a to_o great_a and_o numerous_a mistake_n as_o have_v be_v show_v disc._n 4._o §_o 3._o again_o see_v every_o one_o apprehend_v the_o most_o vulgar_a have_v reason_n enough_o to_o believe_v there_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o k._n james_n and_o q._n elizabeth_n of_o which_o they_o be_v no_o otherwise_o ascertain_v but_o by_o tradition_n why_o be_v not_o they_o as_o much_o or_o more_o justify_v for_o believe_a point_n of_o faith_n receive_v down_o by_o the_o same_o tenor_n whereas_o if_o you_o go_v about_o to_o pump_v their_o common_a reason_n about_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o statute-book_n or_o the_o truth_n of_o its_o letter_n you_o shall_v find_v they_o blunder_v and_o at_o a_o ●oss_n be_v pose_v beyond_o their_o sphere_n of_o 〈◊〉_d nature_n by_o a_o question_n entrench_v upon_o skill_n to_o which_o they_o can_v never_o answer_v with_o a_o steady_a assuredness_n inward_o and_o if_o they_o do_v so_o outward_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o some_o passion_n and_o not_o their_o reason_n breed_v that_o irrational_a profession_n the_o three_o condition_n then_o of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v to_o be_v apt_a to_o settle_v and_o justify_v unreflect_v and_o undoubt_v vulgar_a be_v manifest_o find_v agree_v to_o tradition_n 11._o i_o put_v next_o the_o 6_o condition_n because_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o evident_o prove_v the_o four_o five_o and_o seven_o for_o what_o be_v build_v on_o immovable_a ground_n or_o certain_a in_o its_o self_n have_v in_o it_o wherewith_o to_o settle_v and_o satisfy_v the_o most_o pierce_a wit●_n convince_v the_o most_o obstinate_a adversary_n and_o to_o ascertain_v we_o absolute_o to_o prove_v that_o tradition_n have_v certain_a and_o infallible_a ground_n it_o may_v suffi●●_n to_o note_v that_o disc._n 1._o §_o 13_o 14_o 15._o it_o be_v evident_o prove_v faith_n must_v be_v infallible_a to_o we_o an●_n no_o less_o evident_a that_o it_o can_v be_v such_o without_o have_v infallibly-c●●tain_a ground_n since_o nothing_o can_v be_v firm_a to_o we_o than_o the_o ground_n it_o stand_v on_o now_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v its_o ground_n it_o follow_v evident_o that_o this_o must_v likewise_o be_v infallib●●_n certain_a there_o be_v then_o only_o two_o ground_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n own_v namely_o deliver_v of_o it_o down_o by_o write_v and_o by_o word_n an●_n practice_n which_o we_o call_v oral_a and_o practical_a tradition_n it_o be_v leave_v avoidable_o out_o of_o the_o imposibility_n that_o scripture_n shall_v be_v infallible_a as_o rule_v that_o tradition_n must_v be_v such_o 12._o though_o this_o conclusion_n suppose_v th●_n truth_n of_o the_o proposition_n i_o assume_v as_o already_o prove_v be_v sufficient_o consequent_a to_o those_o adversary_n against_o who_o i_o contest_v at_o present_a th●_n certainty_n of_o tradition_n in_o regard_n they_o do_v 〈◊〉_d stick_v to_o grant_v that_o either_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n must_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n yet_o i_o foresee_v more_o will_n be_v expect_v from_o a_o pretender_n to_o demonstrate_v its_o certainty_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v frame_v his_o discourse_n from_o intrinsical_v medium_n reflect_v then_o on_o the_o nature_n of_o tradition_n as_o before_o explicate_v we_o shall_v observe_v that_o it_o have_v for_o its_o basis_n the_o best_a nature_n in_o the_o universe_n that_o be_v man_n the_o flower_n and_o end_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o this_o not_o according_a to_o his_o moral_a part_n defectible_a by_o reason_n of_o original_a corruption_n nor_o yet_o his_o intellectual_n dark_o grope_v in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o science_n by_o reflect_a thought_n or_o speculation_n amid_o the_o misty_a vapour_n exhale_v by_o his_o passion_n predominant_a over_o his_o rational_a will_n but_o according_a to_o those_o faculty_n in_o he_o perfect_o and_o necessary_o subject_a to_o the_o operation_n and_o stroke_n of_o nature_n that_o be_v his_o eye_n ear_n handle_v and_o the_o direct_a impression_n of_o knowledge_n as_o natural_o and_o necessary_o issue_v from_o the_o affect_v those_o sense_n as_o it_o be_v to_o feel_v he●●_n cold_a pain_n pleasure_n or_o any_o other_o material_a quality_n again_o those_o impression_n upon_o the_o sense_n be_v not_o make_v once_o but_o frequent_o and_o in_o most_o many_o time_n every_o day_n moreover_o to_o make_v these_o more_o express_a and_o apt_a to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o their_o life_n be_v to_o be_v frame_v by_o the_o precept_n they_o hear_v and_o conformable_a example_n they_o see_v so_o that_o faith_n i_o mean_v the_o substance_n of_o it_o or_o that_o solid_a plain_a knowledge_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v apt_a to_o cause_v downright_a christian_a 〈◊〉_d come_v clad_v in_o such_o plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n that_o the_o most_o stupid_a man_n live_v can_v possible_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o
first_o revolter_n a_o small_a handful_n compare_v to_o all_o christianity_n beside_o and_o only_o occasional_o not_o constant_o happen_v that_o the_o descendants_n of_o these_o revolter_n be_v teach_v by_o they_o to_o believe_v they_o in_o the_o right_n in_o interpret_n scripture_n and_o not_o their_o own_o judgement_n that_o be_v follow_v the_o way_n of_o tradition_n however_o misplace_v to_o which_o if_o we_o compare_v the_o numerous_a contingency_n both_o in_o man_n nature_n and_o other_o circumstance_n hinder_v propagation_n every_o day_n happen_v we_o shall_v find_v much_o reason_n to_o prefer_v the_o multitude_n of_o the_o other_o before_o this_o but_o if_o we_o add_v to_o this_o consideration_n the_o daily_a decay_n of_o innumerable_a particular_n upon_o who_o the_o continuation_n of_o mankind_n depend_v by_o natural_a or_o accidental_a death_n and_o reflect_v on_o the_o innumerable_a new_a subject_n and_o even_o whole_a nation_n into_o which_o tradition_n have_v and_o do_v daily_o propagate_v itself_o and_o those_o uninfected_a by_o new_a heresy_n for_o whole_a age_n that_o be_v without_o any_o one_o deserter_n of_o tradition_n among_o they_o and_o none_o of_o those_o behold_n to_o progenitor_n for_o their_o faith_n but_o to_o extern_n who_o convert_v they_o whereas_o propagate_a their_o kind_a can_v only_o be_v by_o those_o of_o the_o same_o race_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o cause_n lay_v to_o propagate_v &_o preserve_v a_o body_n of_o traditionary_a christian_n look_v far_o more_o steady_o and_o less_o need_v a_o recourse_n to_o any_o particular_a providence_n than_o those_o which_o we_o can_v discover_v lay_v for_o the_o keep_n on_o foot_n a_o body_n of_o men._n whence_o if_o any_o as_o the_o common_a fashion_n be_v bring_v against_o the_o perpetuation_n of_o tradition_n such_o wildrove_a argument_n as_o will_v equal_o strike_v at_o the_o certainty_n of_o perpetuate_a mankind_n or_o continue_v any_o species_n in_o nature_n the_o ready_a answer_n be_v to_o show_v they_o do_v so_o and_o then_o to_o tell_v they_o we_o intend_v not_o tradition_n shall_v last_v long_o than_o the_o only_a species_n capable_a of_o faith_n will_v that_o be_v long_o than_o mankind_n be_v to_o stand_v who_o only_o can_v have_v it_o or_o need_v it_o eight_o discourse_n endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v à_fw-la posteriori_fw-la the_o vninterruptedness_n of_o tradition_n hitherto_o 1._o have_v see_v and_o weigh_v the_o strength_n of_o those_o cause_n which_o preserve_v and_o continue_v tradition_n on_o foot_n and_o thence_o endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v its_o indefectibleness_n as_o the_o proper_a and_o necessary_a effect_n of_o those_o cause_n we_o will_v now_o begin_v our_o discourse_n at_o the_o other_o end_n and_o try_v if_o we_o can_v conclude_v the_o same_o from_o some_o proper_a effect_n that_o be_v from_o such_o a_o effect_n as_o can_v only_o have_v spring_v from_o the_o actual_a indeficiency_n of_o tradition_n as_o its_o cause_n that_o so_o we_o may_v show_v the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n conveyance_n to_o we_o double_o guard_v and_o on_o all_o side_n evident_a 2_o though_o indeed_o this_o seem_v a_o needless_a endeavour_n against_o the_o protestant_n who_o yield_v that_o those_o point_n of_o faith_n in_o which_o we_o agree_v come_v dow●_n by_o this_o way_n of_o tradition_n whence_o he_o be_v to_o be_v press_v to_o answer_v candid_o these_o queres_fw-la w●_n not_o the_o trinity_n incarnation_n and_o other_o point_v 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o agree_v hold_v in_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n by_o god_n church_n he_o must_v yield_v it_o no_o protesta●●_n ever_o deny_v it_o beside_o that_o we_o both_o agree_v to_o call_v that_o god_n church_n which_o hold_v those_o mai●_n point_v of_o faith_n next_o he_o be_v to_o be_v ask_v whether_o see_v those_o point_n be_v hold_v ever_o of_o faith_n father_n do_v not_o actual_o teach_v child_n so_o or_o the_o former_a age_n the_o late_a common_a reason_n will_v teach_v he_o they_o do_v which_o devolve_v into_o this_o that_o a_o protestant_n must_v confess_v those_o point_n come_v down_o by_o tradition_n and_o that_o tradition_n have_v not_o fail_v to_o bring_v they_o down_o to_o we_o ask_v he_o next_o by_o what_o virtue_n tradition_n perform_v this_o and_o whether_o the_o same_o virtue_n be_v not_o powerful_a to_o bring_v down_o other_o as_o well_o as_o these_o have_v any_o such_o be_v and_o when_o he_o assign_v this_o virtue_n i_o can_v suspect_v he_o negative_a in_o so_o plain_a a_o point_n ask_v he_o far_o be_v there_o not_o a_o necessary_a connexion_n and_o relation_n between_o such_o a_o constant_a cause_n and_o its_o formal_a effect_n so_o that_o if_o its_o formal_a effect_n be_v those_o point_n receive_v as_o deliver_v ever_o the_o proper_a cause_n must_v be_v a_o ever-delivery_n whence_o we_o can_v argue_v from_o such_o a_o effect_n to_o its_o cause_n for_o any_o particular_a point_n and_o consequen_o for_o any_o point_n that_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o in_o case_n it_o be_v a_o point_n we_o hold_v ever_o deliver_v and_o if_o so_o as_o manifest_a reason_n evince_v it_o our_o now-held_a faith_n be_v teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o our_o dispute_n be_v at_o a_o end_n but_o because_o i_o rather_o suspect_v the_o protestant_n see_v his_o cause_n and_o interest_n too_o deep_o engage_v and_o himself_o straighten_v by_o such_o strict_a connexion_n of_o term_n will_v fly_v of_o and_o deny_v tradition_n to_o be_v a_o necessary_a cause_n notwithstanding_o its_o constant_a tenor_n of_o have_v wrought_v this_o its_o effect_n million_o of_o time_n or_o from_o step_n to_o step_v during_o so_o many_o age_n and_o will_v not_o care_v to_o allege_v that_o all_o this_o be_v pure_a chance_n and_o contingency_n i_o shall_v pursue_v the_o design_n and_o method_n i_o at_o first_o intend_v 3._o the_o effect_n than_o we_o will_v pitch_v upon_o and_o avow_v to_o be_v the_o proper_a one_o of_o such_o a_o cause_n be_v the_o present_a persuasion_n of_o traditionary-christians_a or_o catholic_n that_o their_o faith_n have_v descend_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n uninterrupted_o which_o we_o find_v most_o firm_o root_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o the_o existence_n of_o this_o persuasion_n we_o affirm_v to_o be_v impossible_a without_o the_o existence_n of_o tradition_n ever-indeficiency_a to_o beget_v it_o 4._o to_o prove_v this_o i_o lay_v this_o first_o principle_n that_o age_n which_o hold_v her_o faith_n deliver_v thus_o from_o the_o apostle_n neither_o can_v itself_o have_v change_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o nor_o know_v or_o doubt_n that_o any_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n have_v change_v or_o innovate_v any_o thing_n therein_o this_o proposition_n need_v no_o proof_n to_o evidence_n it_o but_o only_o a_o explication_n for_o since_o no_o man_n can_v hold_v contrary_a to_o his_o knowledge_n or_o doubt_v of_o what_o he_o hold_v nor_o change_v or_o innovate_v in_o the_o case_n propose_v without_o know_v he_o do_v so_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a impossibility_n a_o whole_a age_n shall_v fall_v into_o a_o absurdity_n so_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o nature_n of_o one_o single_a man_n 5._o the_o second_o principle_n shall_v be_v this_o no_o age_n can_v innovate_v any_o thing_n and_o withal_o deliver_v that_o very_a thing_n to_o posterity_n as_o receiu●d_v from_o christ_n by_o continual_a succession_n for_o since_o man_n be_v a_o rational_a creature_n he_o must_v have_v some_o reason_n or_o motive_n good_a or_o bad_a which_o he_o propose_v to_o himself_o as_o a_o eudina_n to_o be_v achieve_v by_o his_o action_n and_o whatever_o his_o remote_a end_n be_v his_o immediate_a end_n in_o tell_v posterity_n a_o late_o invent_v thing_n be_v hold_v immediate_o before_o be_v to_o make_v they_o believe_v it_o wherefore_o since_o a_o see_v impossibility_n can_v be_v a_o motive_n to_o one_o not_o frantic_a and_o that_o it_o be_v evident_o impossible_a they_o shall_v make_v posterity_n believe_v a_o thing_n so_o universal_o know_v to_o be_v false_a as_o this_o must_v needs_o be_v because_o be_v it_o possible_a the_o whole_a age_n shall_v conspire_v to_o tell_v such_o a_o lie_n the_o whole_a i_o say_v otherwise_o the_o refuser_n will_v easy_o discover_v the_o cheat_n yet_o it_o be_v manifest_o impossible_a all_o at_o age_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n shall_v conspire_v from_o so_o many_o several_a and_o so_o far_o distant_a place_n in_o the_o precise_a time_n to_o deceive_v the_o new_a offspring_n every_o month_n ripen_v to_o a_o capacity_n of_o such_o knowledge_n or_o blot_v out_o all_o the_o monument_n which_o will_v evident_o undeceive_v their_o abuse_a posterity_n it_o be_v then_o as_o impossible_a this_o principle_n shall_v falter_v as_o that_o the_o forego_n age_n shall_v conspire_v to_o act_v without_o a_o motive_n or_o that_o the_o succeed_a age_n shall_v believe_v what_o they_o know_v to_o be_v otherwise_o that_o be_v shall_v hold_v both_o side_n
of_o a_o contradiction_n in_o a_o clear_a matter_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v utter_o inconsistent_a with_o a_o judge_n or_o congnoscitive_a nature_n 6._o these_o principle_n lay_v we_o we_o will_v advance_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o our_o main_a conclusion_n on_o this_o manner_n that_o since_o neither_o any_o age_n by_o our_o first_o principle_n can_v hold_v a_o new_a introduce_v point_n for_o not-new_a but_o immediate_o deliver_v nor_o yet_o any_o forego_v age_n by_o our_o second_o make_v it_o be_v receive_v as_o not-new_a by_o posterity_n it_o follow_v that_o in_o no_o age_n can_v any_o doctrine_n change_v the_o immediate_a faith_n of_o forefather_n or_o new_a at_o that_o time_n come_v in_o or_o be_v receive_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o immediate_o deliver_v or_o not-new_a at_o that_o time_n wherefore_o since_o nothing_o can_v descend_v or_o come_v down_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o not-new_a or_o deliver_v uninterrupted_o unless_o it_o first_o come_v in_o or_o be_v receive_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o not-new_a or_o deliver_v uninterrupted_o nor_o be_v hold_v by_o we_o as_o descend_v under_o such_o a_o notion_n unless_o it_o do_v actual_o descend_v to_o we_o under_o such_o a_o notion_n by_o the_o second_o it_o follow_v manifest_o that_o if_o we_o now_o hold_v it_o descend_v as_o such_o it_o do_v descend_v as_o such_o and_o consequent_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o deliverer_n as_o such_o and_o the_o same_o reason_n hold_v equal_o in_o each_o age_n from_o christ_n come_v down_o consequent_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n no_o power_n then_o or_o wit_n of_o man_n can_v make_v our_o faith_n now_o hold_v to_o be_v so_o descend_v but_o its_o have_v be_v actual_o so_o descend_v that_o be_v only_o the_o existence_n of_o tradition_n indeficiency_n can_v have_v effect_v this_o present_a persuasion_n of_o traditionary_a christian_n or_o catholic_n that_o their_o faith_n descend_v uninterrupted_o from_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v then_o manifest_a by_o experience_n that_o this_o effect_n or_o present_a persuasion_n be_v for_o all_o catholics_n hold_v the_o church_n never_o fail_v in_o faith_n it_o be_v demonstrative_o evident_a that_o its_o proper_a and_o only_a cause_n have_v be_v put_v that_o be_v that_o christian_a tradition_n have_v ever_o be_v hold_v to_o by_o a_o body_n of_o man_n consist_v of_o the_o predecessor_n to_o those_o who_o we_o find_v actual_o thus_o persuade_v nine_o discourse_n open_v the_o incomparable_a strength_n of_o the_o church_n human_a authority_n and_o the_o infinite_a advantage_n accrue_v to_o it_o by_o the_o supernatual_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1._o but_o all_o this_o be_v nature_n may_v some_o say_v and_o by_o this_o method_n a_o heathen_a may_v by_o his_o natural_a wit_n become_v a_o good_a christian._n by_o which_o word_n nature_n if_o the_o object_a mean_n reason_v wrought_v upon_o by_o motive_n lay_v by_o god_n special_a goodness_n to_o bring_v soul_n to_o bliss_n i_o wonder_v what_o else_o be_v supernaturality_n but_o this_o which_o he_o miscall_v nature_n and_o why_o reason_n rectify_v by_o such_o light_n and_o proposal_n as_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n can_v not_o have_v aim_v at_o much_o less_o effect_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v say_v to_o be_v affect_v supernatural_o however_o those_o very_a motive_n be_v connatural_a to_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o we_o use_v even_o the_o natural_a power_n of_o our_o reason_n in_o discourse_v of_o thing_n above_o our_o reason_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o expect_v no_o constant_a way_n or_o common_a path_n of_o motive_n lay_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n but_o extraordinary_a inspiration_n for_o each_o particular_a man_n unravell_n the_o order_n of_o god_n best_a providence_n and_o be_v the_o very_a notion_n of_o fanatickness_n but_o to_o meddle_v with_o this_o point_n be_v out_o of_o my_o road_n otherwise_o than_o to_o take_v my_o rise_n hence_o to_o show_v how_o far_a christian_a tradition_n be_v strengthen_v above_o the_o great_a meerly-human_a testimony_n whatever_o and_o that_o the_o church_n owe_v this_o strength_n to_o those_o motive_n superven_a to_o mere_a nature_n which_o we_o right_o call_v assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o regard_n they_o be_v build_v on_o perfection_n of_o will_n in_o the_o faithful_a or_o on_o virtue_n the_o effect_n proper_o attribute_v to_o that_o divine_a person_n 2._o ere_o we_o come_v to_o explain_v what_o advantage_n the_o church_n as_o thus_o divine_o assist_v have_v over_o herself_o as_o mere_o wrought_v upon_o by_o human_a motive_n we_o will_v compare_v first_o her_o human_a authority_n with_o some_o other_o vast_a body_n of_o testifier_n which_o may_v most_o seem_v to_o stand_v in_o competition_n with_o she_o and_o a_o eminent_a and_o acute_a opposer_n of_o tradition_n have_v already_o point_v we_o out_o a_o choice_n one_o namely_o that_o of_o the_o mahometan_n for_o mahomet_n existence_n which_o we_o doubt_v not_o to_o have_v the_o power_n to_o convey_v down_o the_o truth_n thereof_o with_o infallible_a certainty_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n if_o follow_v not_o do_v we_o think_v the_o most_o sceptical_a protestant_a doubt_n but_o it_o have_v have_v the_o force_n to_o make_v itself_o be_v follow_v hitherto_o however_o at_o unaware_o their_o calm_a reason_n grant_v that_o to_o a_o body_n of_o turk_n which_o their_o passion_n make_v they_o question_n and_o even_o deny_v to_o a_o church_n of_o christian_n yet_o i_o aver_v that_o the_o human_a force_n of_o tradition_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o main_a body_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n far_o exceed_v that_o of_o the_o turk_n for_o mahomet_n existence_n 3._o to_o show_v this_o in_o brief_a i_o note_v in_o the_o first_o place_n and_o chief_o that_o howsoever_o a_o report_n may_v spread_v universal_o from_o a_o small_a beginning_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o rumour_n yet_o the_o force_n of_o its_o credibility_n if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v found_v on_o the_o quantity_n and_o quality_n of_o those_o who_o first_o see_v or_o perceive_v it_o put_v then_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o testifier_n in_o both_o case_n to_o be_v equal_a so_o to_o bring_v our_o controversy_n to_o a_o small_a compass_n and_o compare_v only_o the_o quantity_n or_o number_n of_o the_o original_a testifier_n on_o both_o side_n what_o proportion_n be_v there_o between_o that_o handful_n of_o man_n about_o mecha_n and_o some_o few_o other_o place_n where_o mahomet_n conquer_v and_o plant_v his_o doctrine_n and_o those_o vast_a multitude_n who_o all_o the_o apostle_n disciple_n and_o apostolical_a man_n convert_v by_o most_o powerful_a miracle_n in_o so_o many_o distant_a nation_n in_o the_o world_n if_o we_o lie_v they_o together_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o few_o see_v or_o feel_v that_o be_v be_v witness_n of_o mahomet_n existence_n so_o much_o as_o once_o in_o comparison_n of_o those_o who_o be_v every_o day_n imbue_v with_o and_o ●_z christian_n doctrine_n a_o new_a consideration_n spring_v hence_o that_o it_o be_v a_o thousand_o time_n easy_a for_o that_o single_a company_n of_o arabian_n and_o syrian_n to_o conspire_v to_o a_o lie_n and_o so_o deliver_v down_o to_o we_o a_o false_a mahomet_n than_o it_o be_v for_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o people_n in_o so_o remote_a country_n as_o first_o suck_v in_o christianity_n to_o conspire_v in_o the_o very_a thought_n of_o have_v such_o a_o conspiracy_n and_o last_o it_o be_v as_o easy_a by_o oft_o repeat_v sensatio●s_n to_o know_v christian_a doctrine_n at_o first_o to_o that_o degree_n as_o to_o govern_v their_o action_n by_o it_o which_o be_v all_o that_o be_v requisite_a for_o the_o generality_n it_o give_v the_o principle_n to_o the_o daily_a practice_n of_o their_o new_a life_n as_o they_o be_v christian_n as_o it_o be_v for_o these_o other_o witness_n to_o be_v certain_a of_o mahomet_n existence_n and_o much_o easy_a in_o regard_n the_o great_a part_n by_o far_o of_o those_o who_o we_o allow_v witness_n of_o mahomet_n existence_n perhaps_o scarce_o know_v he_o by_o sight_n not_o converse_v he_o daily_o or_o very_a often_o as_o each_o of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n do_v with_o those_o point_n of_o faith_n they_o guide_v their_o life_n by_o 4._o the_o human_a authority_n then_o of_o the_o church_n be_v such_o as_o exceed_v she_o evidence_n of_o other_o testimony_n which_o yet_o be_v such_o that_o among_o all_o the_o most_o extravagant_a opiniastre_n none_o be_v ever_o find_v so_o frantic_a as_o to_o doubt_v they_o and_o shall_v any_o do_v so_o all_o sober_a mankind_n will_v esteem_v they_o stark_o mad_a which_o can_v not_o be_v do_v in_o reason_n unless_o they_o renounce_v perfect_a evidence_n that_o be_v unless_o those_o testimony_n be_v perfect_o evident_a this_o i_o say_v be_v so_o some_o may_v think_v it_o superfluous_a and_o a_o quirk_n of_o a_o
be_v render_v interpretable_a that_o way_n whence_o there_o be_v almost_o as_o many_o mind_n as_o man_n about_o the_o time_n when_o any_o change_n be_v make_v nay_o some_o of_o their_o best_a champion_n dr_n whitaker_n and_o mr_n powel_n profess_v the_o time_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n change_n can_v easy_o be_v tell_v and_o that_o they_o can_v tell_v by_o who_o or_o at_o what_o time_n the_o enemy_n do_v sow_v the_o papist_n doctrine_n this_o i_o say_v be_v so_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a they_o decline_v the_o pretence_n of_o any_o tradition_n against_o we_o and_o the_o very_a way_n of_o derive_v down_o oral_o and_o practical_o since_o write_v in_o man_n heart_n by_o matter_n of_o fact_n work_v on_o their_o sense_n and_o instead_o of_o that_o recur_n to_o pitiful_a shred_n and_o fragment_n o●_n word_n utter_o unauthorise_v if_o the_o tradition_n for_o that_o book_n goodness_n can_v fail_v and_o if_o catholic_n tradition_n which_o in_o its_o source_n be_v so_o large_o extend_v visible_a and_o practicable_a by_o all_o can_v falter_v ten_o thousand_o time_n more_o easy_o may_v the_o tradition_n for_o any_o particular_a book_n which_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o other_o can_v be_v but_o of_o a_o very_a obscure_a original_a fail_v and_o deceive_v we_o now_o that_o no_o tradition_n be_v alledgeable_a against_o we_o by_o protestant_n appear_v hence_o that_o their_o immediate_a forefather_n little_o more_o than_o a_o 100_o year_n ago_o be_v catholic_n that_o be_v holder_n of_o their_o faith_n no_o novelty_n but_o uninterrupted_o descend_v can_v never_o conspire_v to_o deliver_v to_o they_o any_o such_o sense_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v alter_v her_o faith_n since_o they_o have_v the_o contrary_a sense_n write_v in_o the_o table_n of_o their_o heart_n nor_o can_v they_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o a_o tradition_n opposite_a to_o we_o for_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n in_o which_o they_o differ_v from_o we_o for_o they_o will_v find_v none_o such_o nor_o be_v the_o greek_a church_n progenitour_n to_o they_o here_o in_o england_n nor_o by_o consequence_n can_v they_o derive_v traditionary_o from_o they_o 18._o no_o solid_a argument_n from_o reason_n or_o intrinsical_v principle_n be_v producible_a against_o christian_a tradition_n for_o since_o argument_n if_o solid_a be_v take_v from_o thing_n or_o nature_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o christian_a tradition_n be_v build_v on_o the_o best_a nature_n that_o be_v man_n be_v not_o according_a to_o what_o be_v alterable_a in_o it_o but_o what_o be_v abstract_v from_o disease_n absolute_o unalterable_a that_o be_v on_o knowledge_n imprint_v by_o natural_a sensation_n and_o this_o knowledge_n strengthen_v and_o make_v most_o lively_a by_o the_o oft-repeatedness_a of_o those_o sensation_n and_o the_o import_n of_o the_o thing_n know_v also_o since_o most_o efficacious_a cause_n actual_o apply_v that_o be_v impossible_a not_o to_o do_v the_o effect_n and_o effect_n impossible_a to_o be_v without_o such_o a_o cause_n existence_n be_v engage_v for_o the_o ever-continuance_n or_o uninterruptedness_n of_o tradition_n as_o have_v be_v show_v disc._n 6._o &_o 8._o and_o the_o force_n of_o those_o preserve_a cause_n strengthen_v by_o the_o most_o powerful_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n disc._n 9_o or_o by_o best_a grace_n superad_v to_o best_a nature_n it_o be_v impossible_a any_o solid_a argument_n from_o reason_n shall_v be_v bring_v against_o tradition_n 19_o the_o argue_v by_o way_n of_o some_o few_o instance_n as_o the_o manner_n be_v can_v have_v no_o force_n against_o tradition_n certainty_n and_o indefectiveness_n for_o see_v a_o pretend_a instance_n of_o tradition_n fail_v be_v a_o particular_a action_n presume_v to_o be_v long_o ago_o past_a and_o particular_n out_o of_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o be_v particular_n be_v surround_v by_o a_o thousand_o individuate_a circumstance_n or_o rather_o constitute_v by_o they_o that_o be_v be_v place_v in_o the_o proper_a sphere_n of_o contingency_n and_o that_o particular_a action_n be_v put_v to_o be_v long_o ago_o past_a and_o ●o_o affect_v not_o our_o sense_n by_o experience_n in_o which_o be_v found_v the_o force_n of_o instance_n in_o regard_n experimental_a knowledge_n be_v a_o necessary_a effect_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v such_o as_o it_o be_v know_v nor_o have_v we_o or_o can_v we_o have_v without_o tradition_n any_o certain_a knowledge_n coral_n 16._o that_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n pretend_v to_o have_v miscarry_v or_o to_o have_v be_v alter_v then_o or_o else_o the_o manner_n of_o express_v they_o be_v not_o mistake_v then_o or_o misrepresent_v to_o we_o now_o nor_o that_o interest_n for_o example_n of_o one_o party_n passion_n between_o both_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n slightness_n or_o confusedness_n of_o report_n ground_v the_o historian_n narration_n rashness_n of_o belief_n in_o he_o corruption_n of_o his_o book_n since_o they_o be_v write_v and_o innumerable_a other_o chance_n apt_a to_o occasion_n mistake_n do_v not_o intervene_v any_o of_o which_o will_v render_v the_o instance_n uncertain_a and_o the_o argument_n from_o it_o inconclusive_a again_o see_v we_o can_v have_v certainty_n of_o our_o own_o meaning_n of_o our_o word_n when_o we_o demonstrate_v and_o also_o of_o our_o consequence_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o way_n for_o a_o solid_a man_n to_o answer_v tradition_n pretend_a demonstrableness_n must_v be_v to_o show_v the_o incoherence_n of_o the_o term_n and_o not_o to_o bring_v some_o old_a story_n against_o it_o which_o be_v to_o produce_v uncertainty_n know_v to_o be_v such_o against_o pretend_a certainty_n and_o not_o yet_o know_v to_o be_v other_o than_o such_o nay_o who_o be_v evidence_n we_o can_v in_o reason_n deny_v till_o we_o can_v solve_v the_o connexion_n of_o term_n draw_v from_o intrinsical_a medium_n on_o which_o it_o be_v build_v 20._o the_o deny_v tradition_n be_v a_o proper_a and_o necessary_a disposition_n to_o fanatickness_n for_o since_o no_o argument_n take_v from_o any_o dead_a or_o write_a testimony_n coral_n 12._o 14._o 16._o nor_o live_v testimony_n of_o tradition_n coral_n 13._o 17._o nor_o from_o any_o thing_n in_o nature_n coral_n 18._o that_o be_v from_o any_o thing_n without_o we_o which_o be_v a_o second_o cause_n be_v valid_a against_o tradition_n it_o follow_v that_o tradition_n can_v be_v deny_v but_o by_o pretend_v some_o light_n or_o knowledge_n within_o we_o derive_v from_o the_o immediate_a influence_n of_o the_o first_o cause_n to_o which_o pretence_n help_v its_o difficulty_n to_o be_v confute_v in_o regard_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o stand_v stiff_a in_o this_o tenet_n that_o they_o see_v clear_o such_o truth_n by_o a_o inward_a light_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o madness_n to_o go_v about_o to_o confute_v their_o own_o manifest_a experience_n whereas_o be_v argument_n produc-t_a open_o they_o and_o their_o confutation_n may_v be_v publish_v together_o and_o the_o truth_n will_v lie_v expose_v to_o the_o scan_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o indifferent_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v clear_v by_o a_o few_o reply_v if_o a_o right_a method_n of_o discourse_n be_v take_v wherefore_o since_o nature_n will_v easy_o teach_v the_o obstinate_a denier_n of_o any_o principle_n to_o avail_v themselves_o by_o the_o best_a plea_n they_o can_v to_o escape_v confute_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o nature_n will_v connatural_o carry_v the_o denier_n of_o tradition_n to_o fanatic_a pranciple_n and_o that_o man_n be_v so_o long_o and_o no_o long_o preserve_v from_o fanatickness_n than_o they_o follow_v tradition_n or_o the_o open_o declare_a sense_n of_o forefather_n either_o in_o our_o church_n or_o some_o other_o congregation_n again_o tradition_n be_v the_o way_n of_o come_v to_o faith_n by_o the_o open_a use_n of_o our_o sense_n the_o deny_v it_o must_v drive_v the_o denier_n to_o deny_v that_o way_n and_o to_o recur_n to_o knowledge_n have_v some_o other_o way_n not_o to_o knowledge_n acquire_v by_o human_a skill_n the_o knowledge_n of_o such_o high_a mystery_n be_v confess_o more_o than_o human_a therefore_o to_o infuse_v knowledge_n and_o this_o not_o infuse_v by_o ordinary_a way_n as_o preach_v teach_v of_o forefather_n and_o such_o like_a as_o we_o experience_v such_o knowledge_n to_o be_v infuse_v into_o we_o for_o this_o again_o fall_v into_o the_o way_n of_o tradition_n therefore_o they_o can_v only_o have_v refuge_n to_o inward_a light_n or_o knowledge_n infuse_v extraordinary_o or_o without_o connatural_a mean_n to_o make_v which_o the_o common_a road_n of_o receive_v heaven_n influence_n be_v the_o very_a definition_n of_o fanatickness_n 21._o fanatic_a principle_n can_v have_v no_o force_n against_o tradition_n though_o unconfutable_a but_o by_o it_o for_o since_o they_o pretend_v for_o their_o ground_n a_o light_n within_o imprint_v on_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o manifest_v god_n the_o author_n that_o be_v a_o effect_n
the_o knowledge_n of_o such_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o all_o mankind_n who_o use_v common_a reason_n this_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o former_a for_o first_o principle_n be_v to_o be_v self-evident_a to_o all_o those_o who_o be_v to_o use_v they_o and_o proceed_v upon_o they_o which_o in_o our_o case_n be_v the_o most_o ordinary_a vulgar_a 26._o the_o certainty_n of_o tradition_n be_v establish_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o which_o i_o mean_v catholic_n or_o the_o church_n essential_a be_v by_o rely_v on_o it_o infallible_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o christ_n true_a doctrine_n for_o since_o tradition_n be_v self-evident_o a_o certain_a way_n if_o follow_v disc._n 5._o §_o 8._o &_o 13._o and_o both_o best_a nature_n and_o best_a grace_n in_o this_o world_n be_v engage_v that_o it_o have_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v ever_o follow_v disc._n 6._o and_o 9_o again_o since_o the_o certainty_n of_o what_o faith_n be_v former_o teach_v must_v needs_o descend_v to_o we_o as_o matter_n of_o fact_n former_o pass_v that_o be_v who_o certainty_n depend_v on_o authority_n and_o tradition_n be_v the_o first_o principle_n in_o way_n of_o authority_n as_o it_o engage_v for_o matter_n of_o fact_n former_o pass_v corol._n 24._o and_o self-evident_a to_o the_o proceeder_n on_o it_o corol._n 25._o that_o be_v to_o the_o body_n of_o catholic_n last_o since_o christian_a tradition_n right_o understand_v be_v nothing_o but_o the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n essential_a as_o deliver_v it_o be_v manifest_o and_o manifold_o evident_a that_o that_o body_n which_o rely_v on_o it_o that_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n or_o corol._n 6._o &_o 11._o the_o whole_a church_n essential_a be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o she_o be_v in_o secure_a possession_n of_o christ_n true_a doctrine_n 27._o tradition_n once_o establish_v general_a council_n and_o even_o provincial_a one_o nay_o particular_a church_n be_v infallible_a by_o proceed_v upon_o it._n for_o the_o same_o reason_n in_o regard_n that_o proceed_n on_o it_o they_o proceed_v upon_o a_o certain_a and_o self-evident_a principle_n corol._n 24._o &_o 25._o that_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o neither_o they_o can_v mistake_v nor_o it_o mislead_v they_o 28._o the_o roman_a see_v with_o its_o head_n be_v particular_o infallible_a by_o the_o same_o mean_n for_o in_o regard_n a_o more_o vigorous_a cause_n put_v at_o first_o be_v apt_a to_o produce_v a_o great_a effect_n and_o the_o coresidence_n joynt-endeavour_n preach_v miracle_n and_o last_o martyrdom_n of_o the_o two_o chief_a apostle_n work_v upon_o that_o city_n which_o command_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v more_o vigorous_a cause_n to_o imprint_v christ_n doctrine_n at_o first_o and_o recommend_v it_o to_o the_o next_o age_n than_o be_v find_v any_o where_o else_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o stream_n of_o tradition_n in_o its_o source_n and_o first_o put_v into_o motion_n be_v more_o particular_o vigorous_a here_o than_o in_o any_o other_o see_n again_o since_o uninterrupted_a publicity_n of_o profess_v faith_n make_v a_o great_a visibility_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o manifest_a advantage_n to_o tradition_n and_o no_o patriarchal_a see_v but_o the_o roman_a have_v continue_v ever_o from_o the_o primitive_a time_n in_o a_o public_a profession_n of_o christ_n faith_n be_v hold_v under_o by_o barbarian_n hence_o the_o roman_a see_v and_o inclusive_o their_o pastor_n and_o most_o their_o chief_a pastor_n have_v a_o particular_a title_n to_o infallibility_n build_v on_o tradition_n above_o any_o other_o see_v or_o pastor_n whatsoever_o not_o to_o mention_v and_o dilate_v on_o the_o particular_a assistance_n to_o the_o clergy_n of_o that_o see_v and_o most_o particular_a to_o its_o bishop_n spring_v out_o of_o their_o divine_o constitute_v office_n in_o regard_n it_o be_v a_o position_n unacknowledged_a by_o adversary_n against_o who_o i_o be_o discourse_v 29._o tradition_n establish_v the_o church_n be_v provide_v of_o a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n to_o preserve_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o scripture_n letter_n true_o significative_a of_o christ_n sense_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v coincident_a with_o the_o main_a body_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n preach_v at_o first_o for_o since_o ●tis_o certain_a the_o apostle_n teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n they_o write_v ●tis_o manifest_a the_o scripture●s_n letter_n be_v at_o first_o for_o what_o of_o it_o be_v intend_v to_o signify_v point_n of_o faith_n significative_a of_o faith_n or_o sense_n write_v by_o miracle_n preach_v and_o practice_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o first_o faithful_a wherefore_o since_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o be_v preach_v at_o first_o be_v preserve_v all_o along_o unalterable_o by_o tradition_n disc._n 6._o &_o 8._o and_o the_o same_o sense_n in_o man_n heart_n can_v easy_o guide_v they_o to_o correct_v the_o alteration_n of_o the_o outward_a letter_n so_o as_o to_o preserve_v it_o significative_a of_o the_o sense_n first_o deliver_v therefore_o tradition_n establish_v the_o church_n be_v provide_v of_o a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n to_o preserve_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o scripture_n letter_n true_o significative_a of_o christ_n sense_n as_o far_o as_o scripture_n be_v coincident_a with_o the_o main_a body_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n preach_v at_o first_o 30._o tradition_n establish_v the_o church_n be_v provide_v of_o a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n letter_n by_o so_o as_o to_o arrive_v certain_o at_o christ_n sense_n as_o far_o as_o that_o letter_n concern_v the_o body_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n preach_v at_o first_o or_o point_n requisite_a to_o salvation_n for_o since_o disc._n 6._o &_o 8._o tradition_n preserve_v the_o first_o deliver_v sense_n alive_a in_o man_n heart_n send_v down_o by_o way_n of_o live_a voice_n and_o christian_a practice_n and_o these_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n evident_o a_o most_o certain_a way_n of_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o letter_n ●tis_o evident_a that_o they_o be_v still_o such_o wherefore_o tradition_n establish_v the_o church_n be_v provide_v etc._n etc._n 31._o tradition_n establish_v nothing_o can_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n as_o h●ld_v from_o the_o first_o or_o ever_o unless_o hold_v ever_o for_o since_o disc._n 5._o §_o 13._o &_o disc._n 6._o &_o 8._o &_o corol._n 24_o &_o 25._o tradition_n be_v self-evident_o a_o certain_a method_n of_o convey_v down_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o they_o be_v find_v it_o follow_v that_o tradition_n establish_v point_v not_o hold_v ever_o must_v be_v convey_v down_o such_o as_o they_o be_v find_v that_o be_v as_o not_o hold_v ever_o and_o consequent_o not_o as_o hold_v from_o the_o first_o or_o ever_o 32._o tradition_n establish_v it_o be_v impossible_a any_o error_n against_o christ●_n s_o faith_n shall_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n that_o be_v no_o error_n contradict_v faith_n can_v be_v receive_v as_o of_o faith_n for_o since_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o of_o faith_n be_v disc._n 6._o &_o 8._o to_o traditionary_a christian_n the_o same_o as_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o hold_v ever_o or_o from_o christ_n time_n and_o corol._n 31._o no_o point_n at_o all_o though_o disparate_a or_o indifferent_a not-held-eve_a can_v be_v receive_v as_o held-eve_a it_o be_v evident_a that_o much_o less_o can_v a_o erroneous_a point_n contradict_v what_o be_v hold_v ever_o be_v receive_v as_o held-eve_a 33._o notwithstanding_o tradition_n erroneous_a opinion_n and_o their_o proper_a effect_n absurd_a practice_n may_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n and_o spread_v there_o for_o a_o while_n for_o since_o notwithstanding_o the_o certainty_n of_o tradition_n the_o church_n be_v still_o according_a to_o our_o saviour_n a_o congregation_n make_v up_o of_o good_a and_o bad_a and_o the_o bad_a will_v do_v like_o themselves_o that_o be_v be_v glad_a to_o invent_v and_o propagate_v such_o principle_n as_o shall_v make_v for_o their_o own_o end_n or_o for_o vice_n that_o be_v erroneous_a one_o again_o since_o it_o can_v be_v expect_v but_o that_o multitude_n even_o of_o good_a man_n in_o the_o church_n shall_v in_o use_v their_o private_a reason_n be_v liable_a to_o error_n in_o divers_a particular_a point_n or_o case_n and_o that_o the_o remoteness_n of_o christian_a principle_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n from_o the_o principle_n of_o particular_a action_n or_o case_n be_v apt_a to_o make_v the_o opposition_n between_o they_o not_o easy_o nor_o clear_o discoverable_a at_o first_o nay_o the_o ambiguity_n in_o word_v they_o may_v make_v they_o appear_v at_o first_o sight_n fair_o reconcilable_a till_o the_o term_n be_v distinguish_v and_o clear_v from_o equivocation_n it_o be_v very_o evident_a that_o tradition_n certainty_n hinder_v not_o but_o erroneous_a opinion_n and_o their_o proper_a effect_n absurd_a practice_n may_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n and_o spread_v there_o for_o a_o while_n 34._o
for_o fastidiousness_n i_o offer_v my_o reason_n for_o it_o for_o to_o cavil_v at_o principle_n and_o yet_o go_v about_o to_o lay_v none_o himself_o be_v the_o method_n of_o a_o sceptic_a and_o from_o he_o indeed_o i_o must_v suffer_v it_o if_o i_o can_v forc●_n he_o to_o hold_v his_o tongue_n but_o that_o one_o who_o pretend_v himself_o a_o christian_n that_o be_v a_o holder_n of_o christ_n law_n that_o be_v if_o he_o go_v consequent_o a_o rely_a upon_o some_o first_o or_o self-evident_a principle_n for_o hold_v that_o christ_n say_v thus_o or_o thus_o shall_v be_v permit_v to_o impugn_v principle_n bring_v to_o ascertain_v fundamental_o that_o point_n and_o yet_o himself_o lay_v none_o to_o do_v that_o effect_n as_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o impugner_n of_o tradition_n be_v to_o let_v he_o behave_v himself_o like_o a_o renouncer_n of_o christianity_n and_o to_o fight_v against_o any_o assuredness_n of_o christianity_n that_o be_v to_o contradict_v himself_o and_o all_o his_o own_o position_n as_o he_o be_v christian_a which_o permission_n be_v unreasonable_a according_a to_o maxim_n of_o common_a sense_n and_o illegal_a by_o the_o rule_n of_o true_a logic_n again_o if_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o understanding_n give_v it_o manifest_a that_o nothing_o can_v be_v see_v intellectual_o but_o what_o be_v either_o evident_a by_o its_o own_o light_n or_o by_o deduction_n in_o the_o manner_n declare_v it_o be_v as_o evident_a that_o to_o frame_v discourse_n in_o another_o method_n than_o this_o or_o at_o least_o loose_a discourse_n that_o have_v no_o connexion_n involve_v in_o they_o enable_v they_o to_o bear_v the_o test_n of_o this_o method_n can_v be_v only_o to_o talk_v uncertainty_n that_o be_v of_o we_o know_v not_o what_o which_o be_v unworthy_a a_o man_n much_o more_o a_o scholar_n and_o last_o since_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o reason_n that_o every_o sleight_n authority_n be_v not_o comparable_a to_o that_o of_o god_n church_n it_o be_v evident_a likewise_o that_o reason_n be_v to_o weigh_v what_o be_v due_a to_o authority_n and_o that_o no_o authority_n deserve_v any_o assent_n further_o than_o reason_n give_v it_o to_o deserve_v now_o this_o be_v so_o to_o allege_v authority_n undistinguish_o whereas_o there_o be_v such_o diversity_n of_o degree_n in_o they_o that_o perhaps_o there_o be_v no_o two_n to_o be_v find_v perfect_o alike_o in_o merit_n be_v such_o a_o wild_a proceed_n hand_n over_o head_n such_o a_o careless_a say_v any_o thing_n to_o no_o imaginable_a purpose_n but_o pure_o to_o talk_v that_o no_o sober_a discourser_n can_v think_v it_o fit_a to_o spend_v time_n in_o combat_v such_o a_o airy_a adversary_n 2._o i_o make_v it_o my_o request_n to_o my_o intelligent_a reader_n for_o i_o write_v to_o none_o but_o such_o that_o he_o will_v reflect_v back_o on_o the_o method_n i_o have_v take_v in_o my_o short_a discouse_n and_o he_o will_v see_v that_o however_o my_o performance_n speed_v i_o pursue_v the_o way_n of_o evidence_n and_o aim_v at_o least_o at_o perfect_a science_n of_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n he_o will_v see_v i_o take_v my_o rise_n at_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n rule_n and_o faith_n this_o know_v i_o establish_v my_o first_o principle_n in_o this_o present_a matter_n to_o be_v these_o a_o rule_n be_v a_o rule_n faith_n be_v faith_n hence_o i_o proceed_v to_o discover_v diverse_a attribute_n necessary_o connext_v with_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o those_o two_o word_n and_o if_o to_o avoid_v witty_a cavil_n i_o decline_v the_o pretence_n of_o rigorous_a definition_n of_o either_o word_n without_o press_v the_o essentialness_n of_o any_o of_o those_o attribute_n to_o the_o nature_n of_o rule_n and_o faith_n i_o hope_v i_o shall_v merit_v both_o pardon_n and_o thanks_o from_o those_o who_o look_v for_o satisfaction_n for_o as_o long_o as_o those_o attribute_n must_v necessary_o accompany_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n i_o do_v my_o work_n without_o engage_v into_o nice_a disquisition_n those_o attribute_n be_v show_v necessary_o connect_v with_o the_o notion_n of_o rule_n of_o faith_n i_o apply_v they_o to_o my_o matter_n in_o hand_n by_o mean_n of_o these_o two_o proposition_n bear_v a_o necessity_n of_o truth_n in_o their_o very_a term_n that_o be_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o which_o attribute_n necessary_o belong_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n belong_v not_o and_o that_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o which_o property_n belong_v only_o to_o such_o a_o rule_n do_v belong_v hence_o i_o reject_v scripture_n letter_n from_o be_v that_o rule_n and_o assert_v tradition_n to_o be_v it_o and_o this_o be_v enough_o perhaps_o for_o i_o to_o do_v if_o i_o only_o mind_v opposition_n to_o those_o who_o adhere_v to_o scripture_n letter_n for_o their_o rule_n in_o contradistinction_n and_o opposition_n to_o tradition_n be_v such_o 3._o but_o intend_v to_o avail_v myself_o and_o my_o cause_n by_o the_o strength_n of_o truth_n and_o reason_n not_o the_o weakness_n and_o passion_n of_o other_o i_o go_v forward_o have_v first_o show_v it_o clear_o self-evident_a that_o tradition_n be_v a_o most_o certain_a rule_n if_o follow_v endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v the_o indefectiveness_n of_o tradition_n or_o that_o it_o be_v ever_o follow_v and_o this_o i_o attempt_v by_o those_o mean_n i_o take_v the_o allow_v definition_n of_o man_n the_o subject_a of_o the_o effect_v i_o be_v to_o show_v which_o be_v to_o be_v a_o rational_a creature_n i_o find_v the_o proper_a agent_n or_o efficient_a to_o work_v upon_o he_o as_o such_o to_o be_v motive_n or_o reason_n and_o from_o the_o impossibility_n of_o any_o such_o motive_n to_o make_v he_o prevaricate_v from_o openly-delivered_a faith_n nay_o the_o necessity_n of_o see_v he_o must_v destroy_v his_o credit_n without_o any_o possibility_n of_o compass_v his_o end_n i_o endeavour_v to_o conclude_v that_o faith_n thus_o descend_v be_v never_o prevaricate_v from_o then_o take_v the_o way_n of_o demonstrate_v the_o same_o a_o poste●iori_fw-la i_o take_v a_o effect_n i_o conceive_v impossible_a to_o be_v introduce_v into_o a_o know_a nature_n without_o the_o existence_n of_o tradition_n ever-indeficiency_a to_o engraft_v it_o there_o or_o rather_o to_o imbue_v soul_n with_o it_o natural_o and_o as_o it_o be_v ex_fw-la traduce_n 4._o see_v by_o this_o time_n that_o my_o discourse_n by_o stoop_v from_o my_o first_o principle_n while_o i_o apply●d_v they_o to_o my_o business_n seem_v immerse_v in_o matter_n and_o by_o the_o blunder_n of_o many_o more_o and_o more_o particular_a term_n than_o be_v in_o the_o mere_a principle_n forcible_o take_v in_o begin_v to_o look_v with_o a_o contingent_a face_n though_o indeed_o i_o still_o perch_v upon_o the_o specifical_a nature_n of_o thing_n and_o so_o never_o flag_v below_o the_o sphere_n of_o science_n therefore_o to_o comfort_v the_o reader_n understand_v apt_a to_o grow_v turbid_v by_o my_o approach_n towards_o practice_n i_o consider_v tradition_n practical_o and_o open_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o by_o reflect_v connatural_o how_o the_o revolt_n from_o it_o which_o we_o call_v heresy_n come_v to_o be_v originize_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n i_o compare_v the_o human_a force_n of_o christian_a tradition_n with_o another_o vast_a tradition_n mere_o human_a &_o then_o touch_v at_o some_o divine_a assistance_n show_v how_o the_o author_n of_o nature_n have_v establish_v the_o best_a piece_n of_o it_o man_n nature_n by_o particular_a mean_n exceed_v she_o own_o native_a strength_n to_o this_o effect_n of_o preserve_v the_o descent_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n unalterable_a and_o uninterrupted_a that_o be_v i_o show_v tradition_n most_o certain_a and_o most_o indefective_a and_o far_o beyond_o the_o establishment_n of_o any_o other_o piece_n of_o natural_a science_n whatsoever_o 5._o last_o observe_v that_o my_o discourse_n by_o process_n as_o the_o custom_n be_v in_o all_o discourse_n however_o evident_a if_o not_o bind_v to_o syllogistical_a form_n begin_v to_o look_v dishevel_a i_o add_v diverse_a corollary_n in_o some_o of_o which_o i_o make_v many_o several_a end_n of_o it_o meet_v in_o a_o close_a frame_n in_o other_o i_o advance_v forward_o to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n unity_n power_n to_o oblige_v and_o govern_v her_o subject_n as_o faithful_a and_o her_o infallibility_n in_o the_o whole_a and_o several_a part_n of_o she_o be_v found_v in_o tradition_n nay_o that_o by_o mean_n of_o tradition_n she_o enjoy_v a_o wonderful_a sacredness_n of_o authority_n be_v not_o only_o unexpugnable_a but_o also_o unimpugnable_a without_o destroy_v all_o kind_n of_o certainty_n that_o be_v without_o high_a nonsense_n in_o the_o opposer_n and_o hence_o i_o seat_n tradition_n on_o her_o throne_n demonstrate_v she_o they_o the_o first_o and_o consequent_o self-evident_a principle_n in_o affair_n of_o this_o nature_n and_o therefore_o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o
her_o certainty_n be_v the_o first_o principle_n in_o the_o science_n of_o controversy_n 6._o this_o tenor_n of_o my_o discourse_n brief_o reflect_v on_o i_o beg_v of_o my_o intelligent_a reader_n to_o regard_v it_o once_o more_o in_o the_o bulk_n and_o he_o will_v see_v that_o i_o begin_v with_o self-evident_a principle_n that_o my_o principle_n be_v antecedent_n to_o authority_n and_o so_o be_v competent_a mean_n to_o judge_v authority_n by_o that_o i_o studious_o avoid_v wordish_a ambiguity_n which_o rhetorical_a discourser_n lie_v open_a to_o hold_v rigorous_o to_o the_o notion_n or_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n that_o i_o lay_v but_o the_o meaning_n of_o two_o familiar_a word_n rule_n and_o faith_n for_o the_o basis_n of_o all_o my_o discourse_n that_o i_o endeavour_v to_o pursue_v my_o principle_n by_o very_o obvious_a and_o immediate_a connexion_n that_o all_o the_o way_n i_o attend_v heedful_o to_o and_o build_v upon_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o in_o short_a devolve_v to_o this_o that_o it_o may_v be_v hope_v at_o least_o by_o my_o method_n that_o there_o need_v nothing_o but_o time_n and_o industry_n to_o frame_v and_o make_v up_o in_o rigorous_a demonstrative_a form_n that_o sense_n which_o i_o have_v here_o deliver_v in_o a_o way_n more_o suitable_a to_o the_o temper_n of_o the_o world_n and_o ease_n of_o my_o reader_n who_o may_v see_v evidence_n in_o my_o discourse_n without_o be_v oblige_v to_o bend_v their_o brain_n to_o study_v my_o book_n with_o that_o severity_n as_o they_o will_v do_v a_o euclid_n 7._o when_o this_o be_v do_v let_v my_o reader_n reflect_v on_o all_o the_o discourse_n concern_v faith_n make_v by_o any_o protestant_n and_o see_v how_o far_o they_o be_v short_a from_o i_o will_v not_o say_v any_o such_o performance_n but_o even_o a_o attempt_n of_o evidence_n first_o principles_n they_o lay_v none_o and_o consequent_o evidence_n of_o deduction_n can_v be_v expect_v from_o they_o for_o want_v first_a principle_n it_o be_v nonsense_n and_o folly_n to_o talk_v of_o deduce_v again_o for_o want_v of_o such_o principle_n they_o want_v certainty_n of_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n to_o justify_v it_o against_o a_o atheist_n or_o deist_n they_o want_v self-evident_a principle_n to_o guide_v they_o in_o interpret_n their_o uncertain_a letter_n and_o so_o confute_v other_o sect_n which_o differ_v from_o their_o church_n and_o the_o method_n they_o take_v to_o do_v it_o be_v evident_o quite_o of_o another_o nature_n than_o scientifical_a they_o have_v nothing_o upon_o account_n of_o live_v teacher_n which_o ascertain_v sense_n so_o that_o you_o must_v to_o find_v your_o faith_n not_o build_v upon_o the_o sense_n of_o two_o or_o a_o few_o familiar_a word_n but_o of_o a_o whole_a large_a book_n that_o be_v on_o million_o of_o word_n and_o those_o too_o not_o only_o unsence_v but_o also_o very_o abstruse_a and_o mysterious_a they_o suppose_v all_o which_o be_v antecedent_n to_o faith_n that_o be_v all_o principle_n which_o be_v to_o induce_v faith_n and_o so_o make_v no_o provision_n for_o the_o ground_n of_o christianity_n against_o heathen_n and_o atheist_n the_o nature_n of_o thing_n they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o proceed_v upon_o that_o they_o not_o so_o much_o as_o mind_n or_o think_v of_o they_o nor_o i_o doubt_v fancy_n or_o value_v that_o method_n when_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n principle_n to_o weigh_v each_o testimony_n by_o they_o lay_v none_o and_o so_o quote_v at_o random_n certainty_n they_o seek_v not_o nor_o care_n for_o for_o they_o quote_v the_o father_n and_o scripture_n as_o by_o themselves_o interpret_v and_o yet_o neither_o hold_v the_o testimony_n of_o father_n infallible_a nor_o yet_o themselves_o in_o interpret_n scripture_n yet_o plain_a reason_n tell_v we_o that_o unless_o the_o father_n or_o themselves_o be_v infallible_a hic_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la in_o this_o say_n or_o interpretation_n they_o be_v hic_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la fallible_a that_o be_v all_o build_v on_o that_o testimony_n or_o interpretation_n be_v contingent_a and_o uncertain_a yet_o of_o such_o citation_n no_o better_o authorise_a cl●d_v perhaps_o in_o some_o fine_a word_n the_o book_n of_o their_o best_a champion_n be_v make_v up_o so_o that_o they_o be_v convince_v not_o to_o study_v thing_n but_o word_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v scholar_n or_o knower_n but_o empty_a talker_n and_o so_o the_o effect_n of_o their_o endeavour_n can_v never_o be_v satisfaction_n to_o a_o intelligent_a soul_n but_o only_o tickle_v the_o ear_n or_o please_v the_o fancy_n 9_o as_o i_o have_v show_v this_o ungrounded_a proceed_n of_o the_o protestant_n by_o principle_n so_o i_o intend_v to_o do_v the_o same_o by_o instance_n but_o ere_o i_o go_v about_o this_o undertake_n i_o think_v fit_a to_o meet_v with_o a_o objection_n obvious_a to_o many_o reader_n it_o be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v strange_a all_o catholic_n do_v not_o take_v this_o way_n it_o be_v so_o conclusive_a as_o well_o as_o i._o 10._o i_o answer_v that_o all_o truth_n be_v connect_v it_o be_v evident_a each_o truth_n even_o for_o be_v such_o be_v maintainable_a several_a way_n especial_o supreme_a ●nd_n very_o concern_v one_o among_o which_o way_n some_o be_v suitable_a to_o some_o capacity_n other_o to_o other_o wherefore_o catholic_n controvertist_n esteem_v themselves_o debtor_n both_o sapientibus_fw-la or_o to_o those_o who_o judge_v of_o thing_n per_fw-la altissimas_fw-la causas_fw-la and_o insipientibus_fw-la or_o those_o who_o do_v not_o so_o nor_o fly_v high_o than_o a_o prudential_a pitch_n and_o the_o late_a of_o these_o be_v the_o generality_n hereupon_o the_o charity_n and_o prudence_n of_o those_o learned_a opposer_n of_o dr._n pierce_n and_o very_o many_o other_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o address_v to_o these_o by_o answer_v his_o testimony_n particular_o leave_v i_o the_o way_n of_o reason_n and_o principle_n though_o in_o danger_n to_o receive_v much_o disadvantage_n by_o my_o imperfect_a delivery_n and_o secure_a under_o the_o managery_n of_o their_o able_a head_n and_o pen_n i_o declare_v therefore_o that_o i_o intend_v no_o confutation_n of_o any_o of_o those_o author_n nor_o to_o share_v in_o the_o victory_n of_o those_o excellent_a champion_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v perhaps_o needless_a to_o the_o generality_n however_o very_o satisfactory_a to_o examine_v wit_n to_o confute_v that_o in_o common_a which_o be_v already_o confute_v by_o retail_n i_o write_v more_o against_o their_o way_n than_o their_o book_n yet_o if_o any_o will_v be_v so_o charitable_a as_o to_o judge_v my_o short_a hint_n to_o bear_v the_o force_n of_o a_o solid_a confutation_n because_o they_o radical_o and_o fundamental_o overthrow_v all_o their_o argument_n and_o very_a method_n of_o argue_v if_o it_o be_v truth_n be_v advantage_n i_o shall_v give_v god_n thanks_o for_o it_o and_o be_v glad_a of_o it_o but_o the_o main_n be_v it_o import_v not_o in_o maintain_v truth_n what_o other_o do_v or_o do_v not_o but_o if_o it_o be_v show_v that_o catholic_n principle_n i_o mean_v the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o tradition_n our_o rule_n of_o faith_n can_v bear_v such_o a_o rigorous_a test_n of_o reason_n and_o appear_v more_o lustrous_a and_o bright_a by_o so_o severe_a a_o trial_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o revolter_n from_o she_o be_v so_o little_a solid_a so_o volatile_a and_o mere_o make_v up_o of_o fancy_n that_o they_o evaporate_v into_o air_n and_o even_o shrink_v into_o nothing_o when_o set_v in_o the_o midday_a beam_n of_o truth_n the_o rule_n of_o evidence_n i_o desire_v no_o high_o a_o honour_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n nor_o deep_a discredit_n to_o her_o adversary_n first_o appendix_n animadversion_n on_o the_o groundlesness_n of_o dr_n pierce_n sermon_n 1._o look_v about_o for_o instance_n of_o protestant_n book_n most_o proper_a to_o be_v confute_v by_o my_o former_a doctrine_n my_o thought_n pitch_v natural_o on_o mr_n whitby_n where_o he_o go_v about_o to_o settle_v rational_o his_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o on_o mr_n stillingfleet_n where_o he_o oppose_v the_o way_n of_o reason_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o tradition_n but_o it_o seem_v convenient_a to_o take_v to_o task_n also_o some_o adversary_n who_o insist_v on_o testimony_n and_o bring_v he_o to_o ground_n because_o in_o the_o way_n of_o reason_n which_o bring_v testimony_n to_o ground_n to_o confute_v one_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n to_o confute_v all_o dr_n hamond_n seem_v proper_a but_o his_o book_n be_v now_o out_o of_o vogue_n if_o it_o be_v ever_o in_o it_o for_o i_o never_o hear_v pass_v two_o or_o three_o person_n speak_v of_o it_o and_o i_o be_o sure_a the_o best_a protestant_a wit_n of_o our_o nation_n never_o value_v he_o as_o a_o smart_n and_o efficacious_a writer_n beside_o the_o note_n i_o have_v late_o give_v upon_o the_o
again_o for_o god_n love_n who_o ever_o deny_v they_o ought_v to_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v the_o church_n authority_n be_v any_o thing_n more_o frequent_a in_o our_o controvertist_n and_o divine_n treat_v of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n than_o large_a discourse_n concern_v motive_n of_o credibility_n 9_o three_o he_o say_v that_o dispute_v with_o romanist_n whether_o scripture_n be_v the_o sole_a rule_n he_o mean_v it_o be_v so_o limited_o that_o be_v between_o christian_n who_o have_v already_o acknowledge_v scripture_n a_o rule_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o i_o see_v mr_n whitby_n guide_v himself_o by_o sound_n though_o he_o must_v need_v know_v if_o he_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o catholic_n ten●●●_n our_o sense_n be_v quite_o different_a i_o beseech_v you_o sir_n deal_v fair_o with_o we_o be_v not_o that_o speak_v formal_o and_o proper_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o give_v we_o christ_n sense_n and_o do_v not_o that_o give_v we_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o regulate_v we_o in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o it_o do_v ever_o catholic_n then_o hold_v that_o scripture_n interpret_v on_o any_o fashion_n much_o less_o on_o your_o fashion_n by_o private_a judgement_n or_o reason_n regulate_v by_o grammatical_a skill_n criticism_n and_o such_o like_a verbal_a knowledge_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n nay_o do_v not_o we_o constant_o abhor_v this_o way_n as_o the_o source_n of_o heresy_n take_v we_o right_o then_o we_o hold_v not_o scripture_n letter_n alone_o a_o rule_n but_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o the_o church_n that_o be_v indeed_o the_o church_n formal_o speak_v and_o so_o you_o see_v you_o mistake_v our_o principle_n yet_o upon_o our_o joint-agreement_n in_o this_o your_o discourse_n against_o we_o proceed_v retrieve_v it_o then_o you_o see_v your_o error_n again_o you_o tell_v we_o scripture_n be_v your_o new_a rule_n but_o forget_v quite_o in_o your_o discourse_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o your_o reason_n assure_v you_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n or_o why_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o since_o beside_o what_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v to_o the_o contrary_a in_o my_o former_a discourse_n it_o be_v evident_a christian_n religion_n have_v descend_v many_o step_n ere_o the_o scripture_n part_n be_v much_o scatter_v much_o less_o the_o whole_a collect_v and_o no_o less_o clear_a that_o that_o can_v never_o be_v a_o rule_n or_o way_n to_o faith_n which_o many_o follow_v yet_o their_o thought_n straggle_v into_o many_o several_a judgement_n not_o in_o indifferent_a point_n but_o in_o that_o of_o the_o trinity_n among_o the_o rest_n as_o yourself_o profess_v of_o the_o socinian_n that_o he_o reject_v not_o the_o trinity_n in_o the_o first_o place_n because_o it_o seem_v a_o contradiction_n but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o clear_o discover_v in_o scripture_n by_o which_o you_o see_v he_o adhere_v firm_a to_o your_o rule_n and_o so_o ought_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v one_o of_o your_o church_n since_o though_o he_o hap_v to_o differ_v in_o some_o point_n yet_o he_o hold_v fast_o the_o rule_n common_a to_o both_o which_o be_v the_o substantiall_a principle_n of_o a_o church_n as_o such_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o faith_n and_o indeed_o your_o kindness_n to_o he_o here_o and_o your_o tender_a care_n not_o to_o displease_v he_o show_v you_o have_v a_o true_a brotherly_a affection_n for_o he_o though_o i_o fear_v he_o he_o will_v con_v you_o small_a thanks_o for_o make_v his_o principle_n run_v thus_o that_o which_o be_v not_o clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o be_v coniradictory_n ti_fw-mi reason_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v which_o seem_v to_o imply_v that_o be_v it_o clear_a in_o scripture_n yet_o contradictory_n to_o reason_n than_o he_o will_v notwithstanding_o believe_v it_o a_o over-strain_n of_o piety_n no_o socinian_n be_v ever_o guilty_a of_o and_o i_o can_v assure_v you_o no_o learned_a catholic_n divine_v i_o ever_o hear_v of_o ever_o make_v such_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v another_o case_n if_o it_o only_o seem_v contradictory_n and_o be_v not_o judge_v by_o he_o to_o be_v evident_o such_o for_o then_o there_o be_v room_n leave_v in_o his_o mind_n for_o the_o contrary_a assent_n of_o faith_n to_o settle_v there_o 10._o you_o say_v you_o prescribe_v not_o the_o doctrine_n impute_v to_o the_o socinian_o because_o it_o make_v reason_n the_o judge_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n pray_v take_v pain_n to_o consider_v what_o you_o say_v he_o that_o judge_n must_v have_v some_o principle_n in_o his_o head_n by_o which_o he_o be_v regulate_v in_o make_v such_o a_o judgement_n those_o principle_n than_o must_v be_v his_o rule_n in_o that_o action_n and_o if_o that_o judgement_n be_v a_o adhesion_n to_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n those_o principle_n be_v his_o rule_n of_o faith_n examine_v now_o well_o your_o own_o thought_n whether_o your_o principle_n by_o which_o you_o find_v out_o certain_o by_o interpret_n scripture_n this_o be_v god_n sense_n or_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o maxim_n of_o your_o human_a reason_n i_o be_o sure_a in_o dispute_n against_o we_o you_o prove_v and_o defend_v your_o faith_n by_o such_o skill_v as_o language_n history_n and_o other_o knowledge_n get_v by_o human_a learning_n and_o consequent_o hold_v it_o yourselves_o upon_o the_o tenor_n of_o those_o skill_n which_o therefore_o be_v your_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o bare_a letter_n you_o i_o know_v will_v deny_v it_o but_o i_o beg_v your_o second_o thought_n to_o reflect_v that_o a_o rule_n to_o such_o a_o effect_n be_v the_o immediate_a knowledge_n to_o the_o power_n as_o conversant_a about_o that_o effect_n and_o that_o if_o another_o intervene_v it_o regulate_v the_o former_a which_o thereupon_o become_v the_o thing_n rule_v not_o the_o rule_n do_v then_o these_o skill_v clear_a the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v make_v know_v god_n sense_n to_o you_o if_o so_o since_o their_o immediate_a effect_n be_v to_o clear_v it_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o deny_v but_o they_o be_v at_o least_o part_n of_o the_o revelation_n for_o reveal_v be_v clear_v and_o god_n sense_n be_v not_o clear_o reveal_v but_o by_o those_o mean_n that_o be_v by_o human_a maxim_n and_o so_o they_o be_v at_o least_o the_o more_o formal_a part_n of_o your_o rule_n of_o faith_n again_o i_o ask_v may_v you_o not_o have_v mistake_v the_o true_a sense_n without_o those_o human_a maxim_n if_o so_o then_z they_o and_o not_o scripture_n letter_n be_v your_o rule_n if_o not_o then_o only_o common_a sense_n be_v requisite_a to_o understand_v clear_o what_o be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o then_o either_o your_o brother_n socinian_n or_o you_o want_v common_a sense_n which_o i_o think_v you_o will_v scarce_o say_v 11._o but_o will_v you_o see_v you_o still_o hold_v reason_n your_o rule_n notwithstanding_o you_o cry_v up_o the_o write_a word_n find_v you_o not_o there_o express_o that_o god_n have_v hand_n foot_n nostril_n and_o passion_n like_o we_o and_o this_o in_o clear_a term_n why_o be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n you_o will_v not_o answer_v sure_a it_o be_v against_o maxim_n of_o reason_n you_o renounce_v they_o former_o p._n 94._o when_o you_o have_v find_v out_o your_o new_a rule_n and_o only_o allow_v your_o reason_n power_n to_o judge_v if_o a_o point_n be_v sufficient_o reveal_v that_o it_o be_v most_o rational_a to_o 〈◊〉_d itself_o though_o it_o seem_v to_o contradict_v or_o thw●●●_n reason_n now_o this_o be_v sufficient_o reveal_v be_v plain_o write_v in_o your_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o direct_a letter_n of_o scripture_n why_o will_v you_o not_o then_o captivate_v your_o reason_n and_o believe_v it_o i_o see_v you_o do_v but_o compliment_v with_o god_n incomprehensible_a knowledge_n in_o speak_v so_o high_o of_o it_o and_o so_o humble_o of_o your_o own_o shallow_a intellect_n will_v you_o deny_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n so_o plain_o reveal_v for_o your_o own_o capricho_n or_o conceit_n perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v it_o be_v not_o clear_o reveal_v because_o the_o contrary_n be_v plain_a in_o scripture_n too_o i_o ask_v be_v it_o as_o plain_a if_o not_o it_o can_v overthrow_v the_o title_n of_o this_o to_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n if_o as_o plain_a why_o shall_v you_o not_o believe_v both_o be_v valiant_a sir_n and_o believe_v a_o contradiction_n it_o be_v clear_o reveal_v perhaps_o it_o seem_v but_o such_o and_o then_o your_o own_o profession_n p._n 94._o oblige_v you_o to_o admit_v it_o you_o that_o can_v acknowledge_v a_o infinite_a extension_n of_o space_n when_o you_o say_v all_o the_o world_n beside_o do_v so_o too_o sure_o you_o think_v all_o the_o world_n be_v in_o your_o fancy_n may_v also_o hold_v materia_fw-la ab_fw-la aeterno_fw-la and_o that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o part_n
of_o god_n nature_n as_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o jacob_n beman_n do_v and_o then_o secundum_fw-la hanc_fw-la partum_fw-la of_o illam_fw-la will_v do_v the_o work_n and_o give_v a_o true_a sense_n to_o both_o side_n of_o the_o contradiction_n you_o shall_v do_v any_o thing_n which_o can_v by_o any_o mean_n make_v it_o seem_v possible_a rather_o than_o question_v a_o plain_a divine_a revelation_n nay_o perhaps_o you_o do_v not_o think_v you_o can_v demonstrate_v the_o contrary_a to_o the_o solution_n i_o have_v help_v you_o out_o with_o at_o least_o that_o your_o demonstration_n be_v but_o a_o seem_a one_o and_o then_o i_o challenge_v your_o candour_n to_o own_o your_o say_n and_o demand_v why_o you_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o use_v this_o shift_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o rather_o than_o violate_v your_o avow_v rule_n of_o faith_n and_o deny_v and_o hold_v against_o the_o clear_a letter_n of_o scripture_n if_o you_o allege_v you_o have_v perfect_a science_n of_o the_o contrary_a by_o metaphysic_n then_o though_o i_o expect_v not_o this_o from_o you_o your_o science_n rule_v your_o rule_n of_o faith_n gloss_v or_o rather_o violent_o wrest_v the_o plain_a letter_n and_o so_o be_v so_o absolute_o your_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o it_o control_v and_o even_o baffle_v the_o other_o though_o clear_o reveal_v or_o if_o to_o be_v in_o express_a term_n in_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v clear_o reveal_v i_o will_v fain_o know_v what_o those_o word_n clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n signify_v 12._o perhaps_o you_o i_o say_v that_o notwithstanding_o your_o new_a rule_n reason_n must_v be_v your_o gvid_n still_o even_o in_o faith_n though_o not_o your_o rule_n but_o i_o ask_v if_o your_o reason_n must_v guide_v you_o sometime_o so_o as_o to_o deny_v the_o clear_a letter_n of_o scripture_n since_o a_o guide_n in_o any_o thing_n must_v be_v regulate_v by_o some_o knowledge_n in_o that_o affair_n by_o what_o principle_n or_o knowledge_n reason_n be_v to_o regulate_v itself_o while_o it_o guide_v you_o in_o that_o particular_a now_o in_o question_n by_o principle_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v that_o be_v in_o your_o ground_n antecedent_o to_o the_o know_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o principle_n of_o human_a science_n then_o those_o principle_n of_o human_a science_n give_v you_o the_o certain_a sense_n of_o the_o write_a word_n when_o itself_o be_v insufficient_a and_o therefore_o be_v still_o true_o your_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o you_o be_v force_v to_o fly_v back_o for_o refuge_n to_o the_o old_a rule_n human_a reason_n which_o you_o seem_o renounce_v when_o you_o have_v find_v your_o new_a rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v evident_a then_o that_o some_o maxim_n of_o your_o reason_n be_v your_o rule_n and_o not_o scripture_n letter_n and_o this_o be_v what_o we_o reprehend_v in_o the_o socinian_n and_o you_o too_o that_o choose_v a_o wrong_a rule_n of_o faith_n so_o to_o avoid_v the_o church_n you_o both_o gloss_n it_o as_o seem_v best_a to_o your_o reason_n regulate_v herself_o by_o her_o own_o and_o those_o fallible_a maxim_n they_o by_o certain_a acute_a and_o ingenious_a sophistry_n proper_a to_o themselves_o you_o by_o the_o more_o schoolboy_n way_n of_o grammar_n and_o dictionary_n learning_n and_o so_o both_o of_o you_o make_v your_o rule_n the_o thing_n rule_v nor_o think_v to_o retort_v any_o part_n of_o this_o discourse_n upon_o our_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o this_o be_v the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v we_o a_o determinate_a sense_n of_o the_o point_n we_o be_v to_o profess_v whereas_o you_o needs_o skill_v and_o help_v of_o studious_a reason_n to_o tell_v you_o what_o it_o will_v say_v we_o be_v alive_a and_o in_o the_o breast_n and_o action_n of_o the_o faithful_a you_o be_v dead_a character_n waxen-natured_a and_o pliable_a to_o the_o dedalean_a fancy_n of_o the_o ingenious_a molder_v of_o new_a opinion_n and_o so_o alone_z can_v satisfy_v no_o man_n as_o you_o handle_v it_o 13._o no_o wonder_n now_o if_o have_v no_o certain_a a_o ground_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o herself_o your_o church_n be_v shamefast_a of_o oblige_v other_o to_o believe_v she_o man_n nature_n can_v scarce_o own_v or_o permit_v so_o irrational_a a_o tyranny_n yet_o whether_o she_o do_v or_o do_v not_o we_o must_v not_o know_v from_o your_o word_n which_o run_v so_o backward_o and_o forward_o that_o none_o can_v tell_v which_o be_v the_o true_a face_n of_o the_o janus_n first_o p._n 99_o you_o seem_v to_o deny_v it_o stout_o from_o the_o carriage_n of_o your_o convocation_n and_o bishop_n and_o from_o your_o own_o tenet_n yet_o afterward_o you_o seem_v to_o grant_v they_o do_v require_v a_o positive_a assent_n sometime_o and_o justify_v they_o as_o not_o do_v it_o upon_o pretence_n of_o any_o infallibility_n but_o because_o the_o thing_n determine_v be_v so_o evident_a in_o scripture_n that_o all_o deny_v it_o must_v be_v wilful_a a_o rare_a discourse_n and_o worthy_a a_o deep_a consideration_n pray_v who_o must_v be_v judge_v it_o be_v so_o evident_a in_o scripture_n as_o to_o render_v the_o dissenter_n guilty_a of_o flat_a wilfulness_n the_o bishop_n or_o your_o church_n nothing_o less_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o discourse_n p._n 93._o you_o plain_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v judge_n of_o faith_n now_o in_o your_o sense_n to_o be_v clear_o reveal_v or_o evident_a in_o scripture_n and_o to_o be_v of_o faith_n be_v all_o one_o so_o that_o they_o must_v not_o be_v judge_n of_o what_o be_v evident_a in_o scripture_n lest_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n they_o become_v judge_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o without_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v what_o be_v evident_a in_o scripture_n they_o must_v have_v power_n to_o require_v assent_n to_o point_n as_o evident_a in_o scripture_n nay_o and_o punish_v the_o dissenter_n too_o for_o it_o be_v a_o madness_n for_o governor_n to_o require_v any_o thing_n of_o their_o subject_n without_o have_v reward_n and_o punishment_n in_o their_o hand_n to_o make_v what_o they_o require_v to_o be_v due_o obseru●d_v nay_o p._n 93._o you_o absolute_o refuse_v to_o admit_v they_o as_o guide_n of_o your_o faith_n a_o moderate_a word_n and_o less_o than_o to_o be_v a_o judge_n which_o signify_v they_o may_v have_v power_n to_o require_v our_o assent_n in_o matter_n in_o which_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o guide_v we_o that_o be_v they_o may_v have_v power_n to_o require_v we_o to_o go_v wrong_n for_o any_o thing_n we_o or_o they_o know_v a_o excellent_a honour_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o her_o champion_n profess_v in_o print_n her_o supreme_a pastor_n have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o to_o guide_v their_o flock_n in_o their_o faith_n or_o to_o it_o when_o they_o be_v out_o of_o it_o again_o i_o will_v ask_v whether_o the_o trinity_n be_v not_o evident_a in_o scripture_n and_o the_o socinian_o wilful_a for_o deny_v it_o why_o be_v they_o then_o so_o kind_o deal_v with_o or_o what_o can_v be_v reply_v to_o a_o socinian_n answer_v when_o his_o assent_n to_o the_o trinity_n be_v require_v that_o he_o humble_o submit_v to_o scripture_n that_o he_o use_v all_o the_o mean_n he_o can_v but_o discover_v it_o not_o so_o evident_a there_o and_o thereupon_o complain_v that_o you_o obtrude_v upon_o his_o equally-learned_n party_n your_o own_o conceit_n or_o opinion_n for_o scripture-evidence_n what_o therefore_o you_o allege_v here_o as_o in_o your_o church_n behalf_n that_o she_o require_v not_o a_o positive_a assent_n upon_o pretence_n of_o any_o infallibility_n more_o condemn_v she_o see_v it_o be_v most_o absurd_a and_o irrational_a that_o one_o shall_v require_v any_o man_n to_o assent_v to_o any_o point_n or_o proposition_n whatever_o as_o evident_a in_o scripture_n without_o infallible_a certainty_n at_o least_o imagine_a and_o pretend_a that_o it_o be_v thus_o evident_a there_o for_o shall_v it_o happen_v to_o be_v otherwise_o how_o ridiculous_a be_v his_o authority_n how_o damnable_a and_o diabolical_a his_o tyranny_n to_o oblige_v man_n to_o the_o hazard_n of_o falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o matter_n belong_v to_o his_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n profess_v himself_o ignorant_a whether_o they_o be_v false_a or_o no._n 14._o now_o our_o church_n go_v another_o way_n which_o ere_o i_o declare_v i_o will_v let_v your_o party_n see_v that_o interior_a assent_n may_v be_v require_v by_o governor_n lawful_o and_o rational_o which_o your_o principle_n can_v never_o make_v sense_n of_o suppose_v a_o thousand_o witness_n from_o several_a place_n each_o of_o they_o hold_v always_o man_n of_o good_a conscience_n shall_v swear_v in_o open_a court_n that_o they_o have_v see_v such_o and_o such_o action_n do_v by_o such_o a_o man_n or_o that_o they_o have_v see_v speak_v or_o converse_v
believe_v the_o forego_n especial_o in_o a_o matter_n carry_v along_o with_o it_o such_o powerful_a recommend_v and_o this_o out_o of_o its_o very_a nature_n as_o that_o the_o preserve_n and_o hold_v to_o it_o will_v bring_v they_o infinite_a good_n and_o the_o alter_v it_o infinite_a harm_n thus_o it_o go_v on_o and_o while_o it_o go_v on_o thus_o that_o be_v while_o this_o rule_n be_v follow_v it_o be_v self-evident_a no_o heresy_n can_v ever_o be_v disc._n 5._o §_o 8._o whence_o by_o the_o way_n if_o this_o be_v the_o only_a difficulty_n in_o tradition_n that_o be_v in_o case_n the_o next_o age_n be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o former_a tradition_n will_v still_o be_v follow_v and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v self-evident_a no_o heretic_n can_v be_v than_o it_o need_v no_o proof_n they_o have_v such_o a_o obligation_n for_o it_o be_v questionless_a there_o be_v a_o obligation_n for_o man_n not_o to_o be_v heretic_n 23._o well_o but_o a_o acute_a wit_n or_o great_a scholar_n arise_v who_o begin_v to_o question_v this_o way_n let_v we_o see_v if_o he_o have_v a_o good_a reason_n if_o not_o he_o be_v still_o oblige_v can_v he_o bring_v a_o ample_a or_o certain_a live_a authority_n for_o the_o contrary_a where_o shall_v he_o have_v it_o for_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v against_o he_o if_o he_o be_v the_o first_o and_o so_o only_o denier_n of_o this_o way_n of_o tradition_n will_v he_o bring_v demonstration_n against_o the_o point_n how_o can_v he_o against_o a_o truth_n for_o our_o case_n put_v the_o point_n true_o deliver_v and_o only_o inquire_v into_o the_o obligation_n of_o believe_a ancestor_n in_o such_o a_o delivery_n and_o he_o must_v not_o hope_v a_o seem_a demonstration_n can_v free_v he_o from_o his_o obligation_n of_o believe_a ancestor_n for_o whence_o happen_v it_o that_o it_o seem_v so_o to_o he_o when_o it_o be_v not_o such_o from_o perfection_n in_o science_n in_o that_o particular_a no_o sure_o for_o than_o he_o have_v not_o miscarry_v from_o the_o imperfectness_n of_o his_o science_n then_o he_o ought_v the_o more_o to_o have_v believe_v from_o precipitancy_n then_o he_o ought_v not_o have_v be_v passionate_a but_o perhaps_o he_o will_v build_v on_o dead_a testimony_n or_o some_o book_n grant_v to_o be_v sacred_a in_o that_o case_n i_o ask_v how_o know_v he_o with_o such_o a_o certainty_n as_o to_o build_v faith_n and_o his_o opposition_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n upon_o it_o which_o ought_v be_v no_o less_o than_o a_o demonstration_n that_o he_o have_v the_o right_a letter_n and_o sense_n of_o that_o book_n can_v he_o demonstrate_v the_o exact_a conformity_n of_o its_o letter_n from_o copy_n to_o copy_n and_o translation_n to_o translation_n and_o this_o up_o to_o the_o very_a original_a he_o may_v as_o well_o measure_v the_o backside_n of_o heaven_n will_v he_o recur_v to_o tradition_n help_v tradition_n can_v only_o perform_v this_o either_o by_o the_o way_n of_o diligent_a examiner_n continue_a along_o and_o secure_o testify_v which_o as_o be_v say_v be_v impossible_a to_o show_v or_o by_o continue_a sense_n in_o christian_a heart_n and_o then_o it_o be_v plain_a if_o their_o sense_n preserve_v the_o letter_n right_o significative_a he_o ought_v to_o take_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o letter_n from_o they_o too_o as_o the_o father_n use_n to_o press_v upon_o ancient_a heretic_n it_o be_v leave_v then_o that_o he_o must_v pretend_v he_o will_v demonstrate_v some_o former_a age_n have_v err_v how_o i_o wonder_v we_o have_v exclude_v he_o scripture_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o point_n and_o authority_n of_o live_a man_n it_o may_v be_v he_o will_v allege_v testimony_n of_o historian_n or_o father_n but_o first_o father_n take_v as_o such_o be_v not_o mere_o great_a scholar_n but_o eminent_a part_n of_o ecclesia_fw-la docens_fw-la or_o witnesser_n of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v take_v away_o then_o the_o certainty_n of_o delivery_n or_o tradition_n there_o be_v no_o certainty_n of_o doctrine_n deliver_v nor_o consequent_o of_o father_n 2_o lie_v a_o historian_n testimony_n signify_v but_o his_o own_o private_a say_n unless_o authorise_a by_o sense_n write_v in_o man_n heart_n or_o tradition_n 3_o lie_v be_v those_o testimony_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o scripture-proof_n evident_o against_o the_o present_a church_n or_o no_o if_o not_o it_o be_v a_o madness_n to_o talk_v of_o seem_a testimony_n against_o so_o vast_a and_o evident_a a_o one_o as_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a forego_v church_n if_o evident_a it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o man_n nature_n the_o christian_a church_n shall_v recommend_v down_o for_o true_a father_n and_o creditable_a historian_n those_o author_n which_o so_o evident_o oppose_v her_o doctrine_n or_o if_o so_o great_a a_o authority_n as_o the_o church_n deliver_v they_o down_o for_o fabulous_a or_o spurious_a how_o can_v their_o authority_n ever_o come_v to_o be_v undoubtable_a or_o certain_a the_o last_o refuge_n then_o of_o a_o passion-misled_n reason_n be_v ashamed_a of_o her_o want_n of_o principle_n and_o loath_a to_o show_v her_o head_n to_o pretend_v private_a inspiration_n which_o therefore_o be_v the_o last_o non_fw-la ultra_fw-la of_o all_o heresy_n and_o the_o flower_n or_o most_o refine_a quitessence_n of_o all_o faith-reformation_n but_o miracle_n fail_v these_o poor_a creature_n to_o show_v forth_o the_o hide_a divinity_n which_o they_o pretend_v possess_v they_o they_o quick_o fade_v away_o or_o if_o they_o make_v any_o further_a progress_n it_o be_v into_o frenzy_n or_o perfect_a madness_n as_o we_o experience_n in_o our_o most_o miserably-distracted_n country_n which_o disposition_n be_v therefore_o the_o caput_fw-la mortuum_fw-la or_o terra_fw-la damnata_fw-la of_o heresy_n and_o the_o last_o and_o most_o natural_a effect_n of_o relinquish_a tradition_n 24._o by_o this_o discourse_n be_v see_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a the_o follow_a age_n and_o every_o person_n in_o it_o unlearned_a and_o learned_a shall_v not_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o forego_n deliver_v to_o they_o christ_n doctrine_n as_o receive_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n by_o way_n of_o testify_v and_o that_o this_o universal_a obligation_n spring_v out_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o way_n of_o convey_v it_o downward_o it_o be_v time_n now_o to_o review_v mr_n stillingfleet_v word_n against_o the_o possibility_n of_o prove_v this_o by_o reason_n and_o see_v how_o lank_a they_o look_v they_o be_v these_o neither_o more_o nor_o few_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o conceive_v what_o reason_n shall_v enforce_v it_o but_o such_o as_o prove_v the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o contrary_a and_o they_o have_v understand_n of_o another_o mould_n from_o other_o who_o can_v conceive_v it_o impossible_a man_n shall_v not_o think_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o believe_v and_o do_v all_o just_a as_o their_o predecessor_n do_v be_v this_o mr_n stillingfleet_n who_o in_o the_o appendix_n to_o his_o irenicum_fw-la §_o 6._o so_o rational_o character_n those_o for_o more_o zealous_a than_o judicious_a discourser_n who_o argue_v not_o out_o the_o very_a nature_n and_o constitution_n of_o a_o thing_n and_o here_o in_o a_o discourse_n concern_v the_o rational_a way_n of_o look_v into_o a_o point_n quite_o overleap_v all_o that_o concern_v either_o the_o nature_n or_o necessary_a circumstance_n of_o that_o thing_n and_o talk_v so_o raw_o in_o common_a that_o be_v not_o one_o word_n to_o that_o particular_a purpose_n observe_v the_o word_n oblige_v to_o believe_v and_o do_v all_o just_a as_o their_o predecessor_n have_v do_v what_o mean_v the_o word_n all_o do_v he_o mean_v we_o hold_v they_o oblige_v to_o cut_v their_o beard_n or_o wear_v such_o garter_n and_o hatband_n as_o their_o forefather_n do_v his_o raw_a word_n reach_v no_o far_o what_o mean_v the_o word_n just_o do_v he_o think_v faith_n be_v plant_v in_o human_a that_o be_v rational_a nature_n will_v not_o propagate_v itself_o into_o consequent_a and_o subordinate_a tenet_n and_o practice_n all_o the_o wonder_n then_o of_o the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o no-obligation_n lie_v in_o his_o crafty_a and_o sophistical_a express_v it_o which_o include_v a_o fallacy_n of_o non-causa_a pro_fw-la causa_fw-la for_o not_o any_o thing_n convey_v down_o on_o any_o fashion_n be_v hold_v by_o we_o thus_o oblige_v to_o believe_v and_o act_v according_o but_o such_o a_o doctrine_n and_o so_o convey_v as_o be_v before_o declare_v have_v he_o put_v our_o position_n thus_o as_o indeed_o he_o ought_v it_o be_v the_o true_a case_n child_n or_o immediate_a posterity_n teach_v by_o father_n or_o immediate_a ancestor_n rely_v on_o the_o way_n of_o sensation_n that_o such_o a_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v or_o deliver_v to_o be_v teach_v by_o god_n himself_o as_o most_o sacred_a necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o ●_z by_o all_o be_v the_o way_n
of_o science_n be_v to_o proceed_v from_o one_o piece_n of_o sense_n to_o another_o they_o carry_v the_o war_n out_o of_o the_o bound_n of_o science_n where_o solid_a ground_n be_v to_o be_v find_v to_o fix_v one_o fool_n upon_o so_o to_o overthrow_v or_o be_v overthrow_v and_o transfer_v it_o to_o a_o kind_n of_o spatium_fw-la imaginarium_fw-la of_o fancy_n and_o unsignify_v sound_n the_o proper_a sphere_n for_o chimerical_a discourser_n to_o buzz_v confuse_o and_o make_v a_o noise_n in_o where_o the_o catholic_n must_v either_o let_v they_o alone_o and_o then_o they_o cry_v victory_n or_o follow_v they_o thither_o and_o so_o hazard_v to_o prejudice_v his_o own_o cause_n by_o seem_v to_o allow_v their_o method_n of_o discourse_v whereas_o indeed_o the_o catholic_n be_v force_v by_o their_o importunity_n exciting_a his_o charity_n towards_o the_o unskilful_a to_o show_v how_o weak_o they_o discourse_v in_o their_o own_o shallow_a way_n 3._o how_o little_a faulty_a the_o catholic_n be_v in_o this_o will_v be_v quick_o manifest_a if_o we_o consider_v that_o ●tis_n against_o his_o principle_n and_o involuntary_a in_o he_o to_o take_v this_o method_n for_o he_o build_v not_o upon_o those_o airy_a skirmish_n for_o his_o faith_n nor_o consequent_o esteem_v he_o it_o conquerable_a by_o such_o attempt_n he_o receive_v his_o faith_n from_o the_o present_a church_n witness_v its_o delivery_n from_o the_o former_a age_n to_o this_o anchorage_n he_o stick_v he_o stand_v on_o immemorial_n possession_n nor_o doubt_v he_o that_o christ_n '_o s_o doctrine_n be_v his_o true_a and_o proper_a inheritance_n while_o bring_v down_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o so_o many_o christian_a nation_n as_o long_o as_o this_o foundation_n stand_v firm_a quirk_n hurt_v not_o he_o shake_v this_o that_o be_v show_v the_o church_n essential_a be_v mistress_n of_o falsehood_n and_o he_o must_v doubt_v all_o his_o faith_n but_o yet_o can_v hold_v the_o protestant_n for_o he_o must_v hold_v nothing_o no_o book_n can_v secure_v he_o when_o that_o principle_n which_o only_o can_v secure_v to_o we_o book_n write_v long_o ago_o be_v insecure_a itself_o now_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o protestant_n build_v his_o faith_n by_o thus_o hammer_v it_o out_o of_o unsenced_a character_n and_o be_v quite_o overthrow_v will_v his_o will_n give_v his_o reason_n leave_v to_o follow_v his_o principle_n if_o another_o more_o dexterous_o fit_v the_o word_n to_o a_o sense_n inconsistent_a with_o he_o and_o his_o hope_n of_o stand_n be_v not_o build_v as_o be_v the_o catholic_n on_o the_o self_n evidence_n of_o any_o thing_n or_o principle_n but_o indeed_o on_o the_o inevidence_n or_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n and_o his_o way_n to_o manage_v they_o which_o be_v to_o let_v no_o live_v authority_n sense_n thew_v and_o so_o they_o will_v more_o easy_o change_v their_o shape_n as_o the_o ingenious_a contrivance_n of_o fancy_n mould_n they_o and_o then_o if_o the_o discourse_n seem_v but_o a_o little_a plausible_a education_n and_o interest_n make_v the_o understanding_n content_a with_o very_o easy_a satisfaction_n 4._o i_o be_o far_o from_o blame_v the_o catholic_n prudence_n for_o engage_v on_o this_o manner_n i_o rather_o admire_v their_o charity_n towards_o their_o weak_a brethren_n that_o at_o the_o expense_n of_o so_o much_o patience_n and_o pain_n such_o excellent_a wit_n will_v condescend_v to_o so_o laborious_a a_o talk_n less_o suitable_a both_o to_o their_o own_o genius_n as_o catholic_n and_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o cause_n how_o easy_o may_v they_o rest_v secure_a upon_o immovable_a possession_n and_o demand_v evidence_n and_o demonstration_n from_o the_o protestant_n who_o deny_v his_o right_n to_o christ_n doctrine_n how_o easy_o may_v he_o show_v their_o reason_n inconclusive_a which_o method_n be_v observe_v by_o a_o late_a learned_a writer_n mr._n j._n s._n against_o that_o pulpit-vapour_n of_o dr._n pierce_n especial_o by_o discover_v the_o unsatisfactoriness_n of_o the_o method_n they_o take_v how_o most_o easy_o that_o they_o have_v never_o a_o principle_n or_o self_n evident_a ground_n to_o begin_v with_o that_o till_o they_o settle_v such_o a_o first_o principle_n all_o their_o discourse_n be_v frivolous_a that_o their_o reject_v the_o church_n live_v voice_n or_o tradition_n bring_v all_o into_o doubt_n both_o saying_n of_o father_n and_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o hence_o not_o to_o allow_v they_o the_o favour_n of_o dispute_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la from_o scripture_n or_o father_n by_o grant_v they_o any_o thing_n certain_a but_o put_v they_o to_o prove_v all_o for_o since_o they_o be_v to_o object_n and_o bring_v evident_a reason_n for_o change_v it_o lie_v on_o they_o to_o make_v their_o reason_n evident_a nor_o have_v any_o disputant_n right_a to_o have_v any_o thing_n allow_v he_o certain_a who_o renounce_v that_o principle_n which_o if_o renounct●_n all_o be_v uncertain_a and_o last_o that_o he_o who_o deny_v the_o first_o principle_n in_o any_o science_n deserve_v not_o ●ay_n can_v in_o reason_n abstract_v from_o circumstance_n be_v discourse_v with_o at_o all_o in_o that_o science_n nor_o they_o in_o controversy_n this_o will_v force_v they_o to_o lay_v some_o first_o or_o self-evident_a principle_n which_o can_v fail_v to_o produce_v these_o two_o advantage_n one_o to_o the_o world_n that_o it_o shall_v get_v into_o a_o method_n of_o conclude_v something_o with_o evidence_n the_o other_o to_o catholic_n religion_n for_o ●twill_v be_v find_v impossible_a their_o reason_n strain_v to_o its_o utmost_a can_v invent_v any_o other_o in_o this_o matter_n but_o that_o of_o tradition_n 5._o this_o will_v clear_o shorten_v our_o debate_n and_o save_v the_o laborious_a transcribe_v and_o print_v volume_n of_o testimony_n by_o bring_v conrroversy_n to_o the_o way_n of_o reason_n for_o the_o certainty_n of_o first_o authority_n must_v needs_o be_v manifest_v by_o pure_a reason_n but_o who_o be_o i_o that_o i_o shall_v attempt_v such_o a_o change_n in_o the_o method_n of_o controversy_n or_o think_v myself_o a_o fit_a proposer_n or_o presser_z of_o it_o far_o be_v it_o from_o i_o yet_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o nature_n herself_o who_o i_o second_o in_o this_o design_n be_v about_o do_v that_o work_n for_o i_o hear_v catholic_n writer_n complain_v of_o the_o protestant_n and_o just_o too_o that_o he_o put_v he_o to_o answer_v what_o h●●_n be_v a_o hundred_o time_n say_v before_o and_o i_o be_o inform_v a_o eminent_a protestant_n now_o write_v in_o behalf_n of_o dr_n pierce_n make_v the_o same_o counter-complaint_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o dissuader_n begin_v his_o book_n with_o the_o same_o resentment_n beside_o i_o be_o sure_a the_o best_a wit_n of_o our_o nation_n be_v weary_a of_o this_o method_n see_v it_o be_v no_o more_o but_o reciprocate_a a_o saw_n or_o transcribe_v and_o reprinting_a what_o have_v be_v do_v before_o only_o in_o another_o frame_n or_o if_o any_o new_a production_n be_v make_v general_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o some_o note_n collect_v from_o some_o historical_a book_n unobserved_a by_o other_o which_o what_o satisfactory_a evidence_n it_o be_v like_a to_o bring_v with_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v guess_v 6._o now_o all_o this_o happen_v through_o not_o first_o settle_v and_o agree_v in_o some_o first_o principle_n not_o only_o for_o the_o reason_n give_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o preface_n but_o also_o because_o as_o will_v be_v show_v hereafter_o without_o thi●_n the_o validity_n of_o any_o testimony_n from_o father_n or_o council_n can_v be_v weigh_v understand_v or_o press_v with_o force_n upon_o the_o adversary_n for_o if_o these_o be_v but_o part_n of_o the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n essential_a of_o their_o time_n that_o be_v of_o christian_a tradition_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o till_o the_o force_n of_o tradition_n be_v evidence_v they_o will_v not_o be_v clear_o know_v again_o tradition_n once_o evidence_v will_v give_v principle_n to_o distinguish_v those_o citation_n by_o and_o to_o secure_v as_o far_o as_o be_v needful_a and_o interpret_v scripture_n letter_n whence_o clear_a victory_n will_v accrue_v to_o truth_n and_o full_a satisfaction_n to_o her_o ingenuous_a seeker_n not_o that_o i_o at_o all_o doubt_n but_o that_o many_o thing_n in_o catholic_n writer_n of_o the_o testimonial_a strain_n carry_z 4_o strong_a force_n of_o conviction_n with_o they_o but_o i_o see_v th●●●_n while_o the_o solid_a testimony_n be_v not_o distinguish_v and_o sole_o insist_v on_o but_o run_v mix_v with_o other_o of_o less_o force_n by_o such_o a_o mixture_n they_o weaken_v their_o own_o i_o see_v also_o that_o they_o want_v their_o effect_n upon_o the_o protestant_n by_o reason_n he_o be_v not_o first_o press_v to_o admit_v that_o evident_a principle_n on_o which_o their_o strength_n be_v build_v and_o which_o once_o settle_v they_o be_v irresistible_a 7._o the_o settle_v then_o the_o
supernatural_a thing_n again_o it_o be_v evident_a and_o hold_v by_o those_o christian_n that_o none_o can_v come_v to_o heaven_n without_o know_v there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n or_o some_o very_a great_a good_a reserve_v for_o the_o next_o life_n nor_o yet_o without_o love_v it_o for_o none_o be_v think_v to_o go_v to_o heaven_n whether_o he_o will_v or_o no_o which_o love_n beside_o the_o knowledge_n that_o heaven_n be_v can_v be_v have_v without_o know_v likewise_o that_o it_o be_v a_o good_a incomparable_o great_a than_o any_o in_o this_o life_n nor_o can_v these_o knowledge_n be_v have_v by_o mankind_n but_o by_o believe_v hence_o belief_n of_o supernatural_a thing_n or_o faith_n be_v conceive_v necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n nor_o be_v this_o find_v only_o in_o the_o judgement_n the_o learneder_n faithful_n make_v concern_v it_o by_o their_o discourse_n but_o in_o the_o very_o mean_v of_o the_o word_n faith_n as_o it_o import_v knowledge_n of_o supernatural_a thing_n it_o be_v then_o grant_v by_o all_o and_o in_o itself_o most_o rational_a that_o some_o at_o least_o of_o the_o vulgar_a be_v to_o be_v save_v that_o be_v be_v to_o have_v faith_n or_o knowledge_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o certain_a mean_n to_o arrive_v at_o faith_n must_v be_v appliable_a to_o they_o 9_o moreover_o since_o the_o rude_a or_o unskilfull_a people_n be_v the_o less_o capable_a they_o be_v of_o science_n and_o none_o doubt_v but_o some_o among_o even_o the_o rude_a may_v come_v to_o be_v save_v since_o we_o experience_v they_o have_v oftentimes_o well-meaning_a virtuous_a and_o devout_a heart_n the_o rule_n or_o mean_n to_o come_v to_o faith_n must_v also_o be_v appliable_a to_o these_o that_o be_v must_v be_v such_o as_o even_o the_o rude_a may_v be_v capable_a to_o know_v there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n 10._o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n therefore_o must_v be_v knowable_a as_o to_o it_o be_v existence_n by_o natural_a impression_n upon_o man_n sense_n affect_v their_o soul_n according_a to_o the_o common_a light_n of_o understanding_n for_o see_v the_o rude_a be_v very_o shallow_a reflecter_n and_o discourser_n and_o suppose_v to_o be_v utter_o unacquainted_a with_o any_o kind_n of_o skill_n get_v by_o speculation_n or_o study_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n existence_n must_v not_o need_v any_o skill_n or_o science_n acquire_v by_o study_n intervening_a between_o the_o natural_a power_n of_o their_o understanding_n and_o it●_n otherwise_o it_o can_v not_o be_v knowable_a by_o they_o 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o they_o a_o rule_n by_o parag_n 4_o 11._o again_o see_v those_o who_o be_v very_o rude_a be_v yet_o capable_a of_o be_v put_v into_o doubt_n concern_v their_o faith_n either_o by_o sophistry_n or_o fai●_n language_n and_o at_o length_n desert_v it_o and_o it_o be_v most_o unreasonable_a there_o shall_v be_v no_o mean_n lest_o by_o god_n sufficient_a to_o settle_v they_o nor_o can_v any_o mean_n be_v sufficient_a if_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o best_a if_o not_o only_o mean_v to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o faith_n be_v dissatisfactory_a or_o impossible_a to_o be_v show_v worthy_a to_o be_v rely_v on_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v of_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o i●_n either_o by_o its_o own_o light_n evident_o secure_a and_o worthy_a to_o be_v hold_v a_o rule_n and_o this_o even_a to_o the_o rude_a who_o can_v doubt_v or_o else_o easy_o evidenceable_a to_o they_o to_o be_v such_o by_o intelligent_a person_n who_o be_v verse_v in_o such_o reflection_n and_o this_o out_o of_o principle_n they_o be_v capable_a of_o as_o be_v prove_v parage_v the_o 5_o that_o be_v require_v only_o common_a and_o obvious_a reason_n not_o scientifical_a speculation_n to_o instill_v they_o otherwise_o those_o rude_a person_n will_v be_v leave_v unfurnish_v of_o due_a mean_n to_o be_v steadfast_a in_o their_o faith_n 12._o also_o since_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n faith_n bear_v that_o it_o be_v a_o perfection_n of_o the_o soul_n or_o a_o virtue_n and_o so_o no_o act_n of_o it_o irrational_a but_o on_o the_o contrary_a all_o its_o act_n rational_a and_o the_o submission_n of_o onr_a understanding_n exercisd_v in_o it_o rationabile_fw-la obsequium_fw-la it_o be_v evince_v that_o the_o satisfactorine_n of_o its_o rule_n ought_v not_o only_o to_o be_v evident_a or_o easy_o evidenceable_a to_o the_o rude_a doubter_n as_o we_o now_o prove_v but_o also_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o qualify_v that_o the_o faithful_a who_o yet_o have_v no_o doubt_n shall_v do_v rational_o even_o while_o they_o simple_o or_o unreflect_o adhere_v to_o it_o and_o that_o it_o shall_v supply_v to_o their_o common_a and_o uncultivated_a reason_n by_o a_o natural_a way_n what_o it_o want_v of_o reflection_n i_o mean_v so_o that_o the_o common_a light_n of_o reason_n may_v tell_v they_o upon_o solid_a and_o true_a principle_n teach_v they_o by_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n this_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v or_o follow_v thongh_v they_o dive_v not_o into_o the_o ground_n or_o particular_a reason_n of_o their_o tenet_n or_o action_n nor_o can_v give_v account_n of_o they_o 13._o and_o since_o our_o saviour_n intend_v those_o out_o of_o the_o church_n shall_v embrace_v faith_n and_o those_o who_o be_v to_o be_v convert_v be_v heterodox_n that_o be_v hold_v contradictory_o to_o the_o church_n in_o what_o they_o dissent_v from_o she_o so_o that_o if_o they_o change_v they_o must_v now_o hold_v be_v indeed_o of_o be_v not_o or_o be_v not_o instead_o of_o be_v there_o be_v no_o middle_a to_o hold_v to_o in_o those_o point_n in_o which_o they_o differ_v from_o she_o and_o no_o change_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o reason_n or_o in_o a_o rational_a nature_n of_o which_o nature_n those_o heterodox_n be_v without_o true_a reason_n to_o change_v and_o the_o change_n in_o our_o case_n be_v to_o be_v make_v not_o to_o a_o mere_a suspension_n which_o be_v believe_v nothing_o nor_o to_o a_o middle_n between_o be_v and_o be_v not_o but_o to_o a_o contrary_a or_o rather_o contradictory_n assent_n and_o no_o assent_n can_v be●_n without_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o assent_n nor_o be_v any_o sufficient_a in_o reason_n to_o put_v that_o effect_n or_o cause_n assent_n in_o a_o thing_n antecedent_n to_o faith_n as_o be_v the_o rule●_n of_o faith_n but_o evidence_n for_o while_o it_o be_v but_o probable_a that_o be_v while_o the_o understanding_n must_v a●_n yet_o say_v i_o know_v not_o it_o be_v so_o it_o can_v say_v i_o know_v i●_n be_v so_o which_o be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o say_v understand_o or_o to_o assent_n that_o it_o be_v so_o now_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o actual_a assent_v to_o the_o church_n faith_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n it_o follow_v out_o of_o the_o notion_n of_o rational_a include_v in_o the_o word_n faith_n as_o apply_v to_o convettible_a person_n that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v beyond_o all_o peradventure_o how_o high_a and_o presume_v soever_o they_o be_v that_o be_v absolute_o evident_a to_o we_o and_o consequent_o certain_a 14._o moreover_o there_o be_v many_o eminent_a wit_n in_o the_o chutch_n verse_v in_o true_a logic_n &_o enure_v to_o science_n and_o true_a logic_n and_o the_o course_n of_o science_n necessary_o tell_v they_o that_o nothing_o can_v in_o perfect_a reason_n be_v hold_v by_o one_o who_o penetrate_v difficulty_n but_o either_o self-evident_a principle_n or_o conclusion_n necessary_o deduce_v by_o intrinsical_v medium_n from_o those_o principle_n nor_o can_v they_o be_v necessary_o deduce_v without_o immediate_a connexion_n or_o identification_n of_o the_o term_n with_o the_o medium_fw-la which_o infer_v the_o identity_n between_o themselves_o in_o the_o conclusion_n and_o that_o what_o be_v not_o see_v to_o be_v thus_o connect_v be_v unknown_a and_o so_o for_o any_o thing_n appear_v may_v be_v false_a and_o to_o see_v a_o thing_n may_v be_v false_a must_v needs_o breed_v some_o fear_n of_o be_v so_o or_o doubt_v if_o we_o be_v concern_v in_o the_o truth_n or_o falsity_n of_o that_o thing_n and_o none_o can_v rational_o assent_v or_o fix_v their_o judgement_n where_o there_o be_v leave_v some_o doubt_n or_o waver_v of_o judgement_n and_o the_o judgement_n or_o assent_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v rotional_a it_o follow_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o immediate_a producer_n and_o cause_n of_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o that_o nature_n that_o it_o must_v not_o only_o be_v plain_a to_o the_o rude_a sort_n but_o also_o contain_v in_o itself_o seed_n of_o perfect_a evidence_n to_o satisfy_v those_o learned_a person_n who_o shall_v more_o narrow_o examine_v it_o otherwise_o the_o best_a and_o wise_a portion_n and_o
make_v the_o object_n of_o our_o sense_n to_o comply_v with_o our_o weakness_n by_o the_o word_n be_v be_v make_v flesh_n and_o dwell_n among_o we_o his_o be_v bear_v his_o suffering_n cold_a hunger_n persecution_n banishment_n and_o other_o inconvenience_n in_o his_o life_n his_o cure_v our_o disease_a comfort_v our_o afflict_a raise_v our_o dead_a and_o other_o miraculous_a action_n his_o be_v bind_v buffet_v scourge_v crown_v with_o thorn_n and_o last_o crucify_v and_o all_o this_o believe_v to_o be_v for_o our_o sake_n all_o of_o they_o object_n most_o sensible_o and_o palpable_o affect_v our_o understanding_n and_o thence_o slide_v move_o and_o this_o by_o their_o sensible_a nature_n into_o our_o very_a will_n we_o shall_v discover_v that_o the_o infinite_a spiritual_a good_a we_o speak_v of_o be_v become_v through_o the_o provident_a goodness_n of_o our_o god_n both_o as_o easy_o appliable_a as_o the_o most_o visible_a and_o concern_v civil_a action_n work_v on_o the_o best_a sensation_n of_o our_o forefather_n the_o best_a and_o ample_a authority_n in_o the_o world_n to_o make_v their_o sensation_n we_o and_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o our_o life_n action_n sacrament_n and_o all_o other_o outward_a show_n which_o can_v be_v invent_v to_o make_v such_o mystery_n maniable_a can_v possible_o render_v they_o and_o that_o if_o after_o all_o this_o they_o can_v be_v conceive_v to_o want_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o sensibleness_n it_o be_v abundant_o supply_v by_o that_o deep_a impression_n which_o the_o sacred_a horror_n of_o the_o reverence_n give_v to_o they_o make_v and_o the_o efficacious_a way_n to_o excite_v and_o and_o preserve_v that_o reverence_n all_o which_o way_n and_o object_n thus_o easy_o and_o strong_o appliable_a be_v frequent_o and_o efficacious_o apply_v by_o the_o education_n of_o parent_n and_o by_o the_o discipline_n and_o oeconomy_n of_o the_o church_n which_o bring_v those_o speculation_n to_o practice_n be_v ever_o and_o must_v needs_o reach_v the_o generality_n in_o a_o word_n christianity_n urge_v to_o execution_n give_v its_o follower_n a_o new_a life_n and_o a_o new_a nature_n than_o which_o a_o near_a application_n can_v be_v imagine_v no_o application_n therefore_o be_v want_v wherefore_o the_o efficient_a and_o the_o matter_n be_v proper_a and_o fit_v to_o one_o another_o the_o effect_n must_v still_o be_v or_o continue_v that_o be_v the_o deliver_v down_o sincere_o and_o careful_o christian_a doctrine_n first_o receive_v must_v still_o continue_v in_o some_o great_a multitude_n at_o least_o and_o this_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n seven_o discourse_n a_o objection_n clear_v and_o the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o a_o heresy_n connatural_o lay_v open_a 1._o what_o only_a and_o main_o seem_v to_o prejudice_v our_o argument_n be_v that_o there_o have_v actual_o be_v many_o heretic_n or_o deserter_n of_o tradition_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v but_o some_o contingency_n shall_v have_v place_n where_o a_o whole_a species_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v to_o be_v wrought_v upon_o it_o suffice_v we_o that_o the_o cause_n to_o preserve_v faith_n indeficient_o entire_a be_v as_o efficacious_a as_o those_o which_o be_v lay_v for_o the_o propagagation_n of_o mankind_n the_o virtue_n of_o faith_n not_o be_v to_o continue_v long_o than_o mankind_n its_o only_a subject_n do_v and_o they_o will_v easy_o appear_v as_o efficacious_a as_o the_o other_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o strength_n of_o those_o cause_n before_o explicate_v and_o reflect_v that_o they_o be_v effective_o powerful_a to_o make_v multitude_n daily_o debar_v themselves_o of_o those_o pleasure_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o mankind_n propagation_n and_o if_o we_o look_v into_o history_n for_o experience_n of_o what_o have_v pass_v in_o the_o world_n since_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o christianity_n we_o shall_v find_v fa●_n more_o particular_n fail_v in_o propagate_a their_o kind_a than_o their_o faith_n 2._o i_o know_v the_o multitude_n of_o heretic_n which_o have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n rise_v make_v this_o position_n seem_v incredible_a wherefore_o that_o we_o may_v 〈◊〉_d once_o both_o open_a tradition_n and_o make_v good_a ou●_n tenet_n we_o will_v reflect_v how_o a_o heresy_n be_v first_o breed_v to_o enforce_v then_o our_o former_a argument_n we_o mus●_n look_v on_o christ_n church_n not_o only_o as_o on_o a_o congregation_n have_v in_o their_o heart_n those_o most_o powerful_a motive_n already_o speak_v of_o able_a of_o their_o own_o nature_n to_o carry_v each_o single_a heart_n possess_v by_o they_o though_o leave_v at_o its_o own_o liberty_n but_o as_o o●_n the_o perfect_a form_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n have_v within_o herself_o government_n and_o officer_n appoint_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o so_o look_v upon_o by_o the_o faithful_a to_o take_v care_n all_o those_o motive_n b●_n actual_o apply_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v to_o the_o subject_a laity_n and_o that_o all_o the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n be_v awe_v by_o wholesome_a discipline_n to_o conform_v their_o life_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n they_o profess_v yet_o notwithstanding_o as_o in_o the_o civil_a state_n maugre_o the_o law_n and_o care_n of_o governor_n it_o happen_v sometime_o that_o some_o particular_a person_n turn_v rebel_n or_o outlaw_n and_o associate_n to_o himself_n other_o so_o it_o happen_v sometime_o in_o the_o church_n that_o because_o it_o be_v impossible_a the_o perfection_n of_o discipline_n shall_v extend_v itself_o in_o so_o vast_a a_o multititude_n to_o every_o particular_a some_o one_o or_o few_o person_n by_o neglect_n of_o apply_v christian_n motive_n to_o their_o soul_n fall_v into_o extravagancy_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n ambition_n lust_n or_o other_o vice_n and_o itch_a with_o desire_n of_o follower_n to_o honour_n and_o support_v they_o they_o first_o lie_v hold_v on_o some_o accidental_a miscarriage_n as_o foolish_a opinion_n or_o ill_a life_n of_o some_o in_o the_o church_n which_o they_o aggravate_v beyond_o all_o reason_n to_o justify_v their_o rebellion_n and_o 〈◊〉_d invent_v and_o propose_v new_a tenet_n to_o other_o which_o partly_o by_o their_o plausibleness_n partly_o licentiousness_n suit_v with_o the_o curious_a or_o passionate_a humour_n of_o diverse_a if_o governor_n be_v not_o vigilant_a and_o prudent_a draw_v they_o into_o the_o same_o faction_n with_o themselves_o especial_o if_o they_o get_v the_o state_n on_o their_o side_n secure_a indemnity_n and_o hope_n of_o reward_n draw_v the_o corrupt_a heart_n of_o many_o to_o bandy_v with_o their_o fellow-revolters_a against_o the_o former_a church_n thus_o a_o body_n be_v make_v inconsiderable_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a which_o yet_o be_v engage_v by_o the_o natural_a care_n of_o self-preservation_n to_o make_v head_n against_o it_o the_o church_n stand_v upon_o the_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o her_o doctrine_n from_o christ_n ground_v on_o the_o noonday_n manifestation_n of_o the_o most_o universal_a and_o clear_a attestation_n in_o the_o world_n the_o other_o know_a newness_n make_v it_o impossible_a to_o human_a nature_n though_o most_o deprave_a to_o pretend_v this_o reception_n from_o immediate_a forefather_n the_o contrary_a be_v so_o evident_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n eyesight_n that_o this_o be_v to_o tell_v a_o open_o to_o no_o imaginable_a purpose_n they_o must_v cry_v therefore_o the_o church_n have_v err_v in_o faith_n else_o they_o condemn_v themselves_o whence_o they_o be_v oblige_v at_o next_o to_o renounce_v and_o disgrace_v tradition_n or_o the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n as_o unfit_a to_o be_v a_o rule_n which_o leave_v in_o force_n will_v present_o quash_n and_o strangle_v all_o their_o attempt_n after_o this_o a_o new_a rule_n must_v be_v seek_v for_o either_o some_o private_a inspiration_n or_o some_o waxen-natur●d_a word_n not_o yet_o sence_v not_o have_v any_o certain_a interpreter_n but_o fit_a to_o be_v play_v upon_o diverse_o by_o quirk_n of_o wit_n that_o be_v apt_a to_o blunder_v and_o confound_v but_o to_o clear_v little_a or_o nothing_o their_o policy_n must_v be_v to_o study_v vapour_n in_o wordish_a learning_n to_o be_v dextrous_a in_o criticism_n and_o all_o that_o can_v conduce_v to_o the_o various_a acception_n of_o word_n and_o then_o to_o hook_v catholic_n from_o their_o infallible_a and_o evident_a way_n of_o tradition_n to_o combat_v with_o they_o at_o their_o own_o weapon_n and_o in_o their_o own_o way_n in_o which_o if_o the_o catholic_n be_v so_o unwary_a or_o good-natured_a as_o to_o engage_v and_o have_v be_v enure_v to_o more_o solid_a and_o sober_a ground_n for_o his_o faith_n be_v not_o perhaps_o so_o skilful_a in_o beat_v the_o air_n as_o his_o bird-witted_n opponent_n present_o a_o victory_n be_v proclaim_v with_o the_o loud_a trumpet_n of_o fame_n and_o vanity_n be_v general_o their_o god_n who_o place_n their_o honour_n in_o such_o airy_a sort_n of_o learning_n
believe_v ancestor_n that_o they_o who_o do_v not_o so_o stand_v upon_o a_o precipice_n seeking_z what_o be_v beyond_o their_o power_n that_o be_v to_o hammer_v a_o certain_a faith_n out_o of_o scripture_n letter_n by_o their_o private_a wit._n which_o reflect_v on_o a_o little_a reason_n enlighten_v by_o so_o plain_a and_o manifold_a experience_n will_v easy_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v the_o shallowness_n of_o their_o ground_n unable_a to_o satisfy_v rational_a nature_n which_o make_v so_o many_o of_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o seek_v for_o faith_n and_o so_o leave_v they_o and_o the_o solid_a secureness_n connaturalness_n and_o satisfactoriness_n of_o we_o which_o make_v few_o or_o none_o leave_v we_o and_o those_o who_o do_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o discover_v the_o motive_n of_o their_o revolt_n 11._o yet_o one_o more_o from_o this_o illustrious_a father_n as_o one_o who_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o famous_a contrast_n with_o the_o impious_a arian_n it_o concern_v to_o be_v more_o express_a in_o inculcate_v and_o stick_v to_o the_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n he_o write_v to_o epictetus_n bishop_n of_o corinth_n it_o be_v to_o be_v answer_v say_v he_o to_o those_o thing_n which_o alone_o of_o itself_o suffice_v that_o those_o be_v vot_o of_o the_o orthodox_n church_n and_o that_o our_o ancestor_n never_o hold_v so_o so_o that_o the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n or_o belief_n of_o ancestor_n be_v hold_v by_o he_o a_o sole-sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o only_a answer_n to_o be_v give_v why_o we_o reject_v point_n from_o faith_n or_o admit_v they_o into_o it_o that_o be_v a_o evident_a reason_n for_o such_o a_o carriage_n for_o otherwise_o another_o answer_n will_v be_v requisite_a 12._o we_o will_v be_v short_a in_o the_o rest_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n stromatôn_n 7o._o as_o if_o one_o of_o a_o man_n become_v a_o beast_n like_o those_o infect_v by_o circe_n poison_n so_o he_o have_v forfeit_v his_o be_v a_o man-of-god_n and_o faithful_a to_o our_o lord_n who_o spurn_v against_o the_o church_n tradition_n and_o leap_v into_o opinion_n of_o human_a election_n basil_n against_o eunomius_n will_v thou_o have_v we_o all_o persuade_v by_o thou_o prefer_v your_o conceit_n before_o the_o tradition_n of_o faith_n which_o perpetual_o have_v conquer_v under_o so_o many_o holy_a man_n and_o speak_v against_o two_o other_o heretic_n sabellius_n and_o arius_n let_v tradition_n bridle_v thou_o our_o lord_n teach_v thus_o the_o apostle_n preach_v it_o the_o father_n conserve_v it_o our_o ancestor_n confirm_v it_o be_v content_a to_o say_v as_o thou_o be_v teach_v we_o have_v it_o clear_v then_o that_o the_o renouncer_n of_o tradition_n be_v none_o of_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o root_n of_o faith_n see_v corol._n 4._o that_o all_o be_v man_n conceit_n and_o arbitrary_a opinion_n which_o the_o word_n heresy_n import_v that_o be_v opposite_a to_o tradition_n we_o have_v last_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o our_o faith_n descent_n from_o christ_n to_o we_o yet_o not_o a_o word_n of_o descend_v by_o scripture_n or_o letter_n in_o book_n but_o by_o the_o way_n of_o preach_v and_o teach_v that_o be_v oral_a delivery_n and_o sense_n write_v in_o man_n heart_n 13._o i_o omit_v many_o other_o father_n but_o i_o must_v not_o s._n austin_n ea_fw-la potius_fw-la credam_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o will_v rather_o believe_v say_v he_o contra_fw-la epistolam_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la those_o thing_n which_o be_v celebrate_v now_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a and_o be_v confirm_v throughout_o all_o nation_n by_o most_o grave_a authority_n and_o again_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v of_o force_n to_o cause_n faith_n and_o assurance_n which_o authority_n from_o the_o best_a establish_a seat_n of_o the_o apostle_n even_o to_o this_o very_a day_n be_v strengthen_v by_o the_o series_n of_o bishop_n succeed_v they_o and_o by_o the_o assertion_n of_o so_o many_o nation_n in_o both_o place_n he_o he_o make_v the_o consent_n of_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a bishop_n and_o conspire_a people_n continue_v down_o to_o these_o day_n that_o be_v the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n essential_a or_o tradition_n the_o most_o grave_a authority_n apt_a to_o ascertain_v we_o and_o cause_n faith_n that_o be_v he_o make_v tradition_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o build_v its_o strength_n as_o we_o also_o do_v on_o the_o multitude_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o asserter_n or_o testifier_n of_o its_o descent_n also_o in_o his_o 58._o epistle_n the_o faithful_a say_v he_o do_v possess_v persevere_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n common_a to_o little_a and_o great_a in_o the_o church_n where_o every_o word_n be_v emphatical_a that_o the_o church_n voice_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o this_o rule_n be_v common_a to_o learued_a and_o unlearned_a that_o be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v the_o acute_a discourser_n and_o yet_o understandable_a by_o the_o rude_a vulgar_a last_o that_o they_o hold_v it_o and_o that_o persevere_o or_o unshaken_o which_o show_v it_o self-evident_a else_o both_o the_o unlearned_a at_o least_o may_v come_v to_o doubt_v of_o it_o see_v disc._n 5._o §_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o 14._o thus_o much_o for_o the_o credit_n of_o tradition_n it_o be_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n certain_a and_o uninterrupted_a but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v who_o enjoy_v this_o tradition_n or_o what_o point_n have_v be_v hand_v down_o by_o it_o from_o the_o beginning_n must_v we_o not_o run_v to_o private_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v assure_v of_o this_o or_o at_o least_o to_o library_n of_o book_n write_v in_o all_o former_a age_n to_o see_v if_o perhaps_o their_o author_n might●have_v dream_v of_o our_o now_o difficulty_n and_o then_o prophesy_v we_o a_o satisfaction_n so_o express_v and_o ample_a that_o no_o cavil_n can_v avoid_v it_o no_o we_o have_v manifest_a certainty_n of_o it_o other_o way_n if_o we_o may_v trust_v the_o father_n we_o will_v only_o allege_v two_o both_o very_a ancient_n and_o great_a master_n of_o controversy_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o time_n s._n ireneus_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 3._o all_o those_o who_o will_v hear_v truth_n may_v at_o present_v perfect_o discern_v adest_fw-la perspicere_fw-la in_o the_o church_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n manifest_a in_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n proceed_v upon_o or_o adhere_v to_o tradition_n be_v a_o manifest_a argument_n that_o what_o it_o teach_v now_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o tertullian_n contra_fw-la marcionem_fw-la that_o be_v manifest_o true_a which_o be_v first_o that_o first_o which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n that_o from_o the_o beginning_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n in_o like_a manner_n that_o will_v manifest_o appear_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o shall_v be_v establish_v as_o sacred_a in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o first_o he_o ascend_v and_o confound_v novelty_n or_o heresy_n by_o show_v that_o the_o priority_n of_o what_o they_o leave_v argue_v it_o to_o have_v be_v ever_o or_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o true_a and_o then_o prove_v and_o manifest_o too_o that_o that_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v find_v establish_v that_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o all_o his_o former_a doctrine_n run_v as_o sacred_a in_o the_o church_n at_o present_a which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o he_o be_v yet_o more_o express_a in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o the_o same_o heretic_n nothing_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o what_o be_v at_o this_o present_a day_n profess_v for_o such_o in_o their_o church_n so_o that_o he_o send_v we_o not_o to_o volume_n of_o history_n and_o other_o writer_n which_o if_o tradition_n can'fail_v be_v of_o no_o authority_n to_o find_v what_o be_v the_o ancient_a or_o primitive_a tradition_n or_o what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v or_o deliver_v but_o only_o to_o the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o have_v be_v but_o a_o weak_a procedure_n in_o case_n their_o hold_v now_o a_o thing_n deliver_v be_v not_o argumentative_a that_o it_o be_v deliver_v ever_o which_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o my_o proof_n a_o posteriori_fw-la for_o the_o indefectiveness_n of_o tradition_n and_o lest_o it_o shall_v be_v imagine_v that_o this_o argument_n lose_v its_o force_n by_o tract_n of_o time_n or_o the_o long-continuance_n of_o the_o church_n peter_n chrysologus_fw-la in_o his_o 85._o sermon_n secure_v we_o from_o that_o danger_n a_o christian_a mind_n know_v not_o how_o to_o bring_v into_o dispute_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v strengthen_v by_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n and_o even_o ipsis_fw-la temporibus_fw-la by_o time_n
true_a sense_n of_o that_o letter_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n deliver_v see_v coral_n 29._o &_o 30_o it_o follow_v that_o scripture_n allege_v by_o the_o church_n rely_v on_o tradition_n for_o its_o rule_n engage_v certain_o and_o full_o the_o very_a authority_n of_o the_o divine_o inspire_v writer_n himself_o and_o give_v that_o testimony_n the_o whole_a effect_n upon_o our_o understanding_n which_o that_o sacred_a writer_n authority_n deserve_v to_o have_v give_v it_o no_o wonder_n then_o the_o council_n proceed_v upon_o traditionary_a interpretation_n as_o it_o constant_o declare_v itself_o to_o do_v honour_n scripture-testimony_n so_o as_o to_o put_v it_o before_o tradition_n or_o the_o delivery_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n scripture_n thus_o allege_v and_o secure_v have_v the_o same_o force_n as_o if_o the_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n himself_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o council_n and_o by_o way_n of_o live_a voice_n declare_v his_o own_o sense_n in_o the_o matter_n to_o who_o thus_o present_a what_o deference_n the_o council_n will_v have_v give_v be_v obvious_a to_o be_v imagine_v hence_o also_o the_o protestant_n may_v see_v what_o high_a esteem_n our_o church_n give_v to_o god_n word_n true_o so_o call_v that_o be_v have_v god_n sense_n certainly-known_a to_o be_v such_o in_o it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o outward_a letter_n as_o use_v to_o hammer_v a_o faith_n out_o of_o by_o wordish_a skill_n that_o be_v indeed_o their_o method_n of_o interpret_n it_o which_o by_o reason_n of_o its_o uncertainty_n fall_v short_a of_o engage_v the_o sacred_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n we_o fleight_v and_o scorn_v and_o most_o just_o since_o it_o be_v the_o have_n no_o better_a way_n to_o work_v on_o scripture_n which_o have_v bring_v scripture_n itself_o thus_o use_v to_o scorn_v and_o contempt_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o carriage_n of_o our_o bedlam_n of_o new_a sect_n in_o england_n i_o expect_v here_o some_o mighty_a man_n of_o talk_n but_o very_o weak_a speculator_n shall_v object_v that_o this_o be_v a_o excellent_a way_n to_o bring_v all_o into_o our_o church_n hand_n but_o till_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o both_o letter_n &_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v knowable_a with_o such_o a_o certainty_n as_o to_o build_v on_o they_o that_o most_o firm_a assent_v call_v faith_n by_o any_o other_o way_n than_o this_o of_o tradition_n i_o can_v neither_o hinder_v my_o inference_n nor_o will_v he_o ever_o be_v able_a to_o confute_v my_o discourse_n 20._o thus_o much_o to_o show_v evident_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n we_o have_v give_v in_o our_o former_a discourse_n be_v the_o very_a sense_n of_o our_o church_n at_o present_a and_o that_o her_o present_a sense_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o council_n i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v now_o but_o to_o show_v that_o at_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o breach_n here_o in_o england_n the_o catholic_n be_v find_v adhere_v fast_o to_o this_o rule_n of_o tradition_n renounce_v by_o the_o protestant_n this_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o protestant_n own_o confession_n for_o as_o oft_o as_o you_o hear_v they_o allege_v that_o england_n be_v former_o overgrow_v with_o popery_n that_o the_o new_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v of_o late_o discover_v itself_o that_o they_o reform_v in_o faith_n that_o the_o former_a church_n err_v and_o such_o like_a expression_n which_o natural_o must_v burst_v out_o from_o they_o so_o oft_o you_o hear_v they_o acknowledge_v themselves_o deserter_n of_o tradition_n and_o innovator_n which_o expression_n of_o they_o by_o the_o way_n easy_o manifest_a to_o the_o most_o vulgar_a understanding_n who_o ●tis_o that_o have_v renounct_v tradition_n whence_o it_o be_v also_o easy_o evidenceable_a to_o the_o rude_a capacity_n that_o tradition_n be_v a_o most_o certain_a way_n of_o bring_v down_o faith_n disc._n 5._o §_o 8._o the_o most_o vulgar_a soul_n be_v capable_a of_o know_v which_o profession_n it_o be_v to_o follow_v for_o the_o two_o former_a point_n be_v know_v they_o be_v certain_a by_o motive_n within_o their_o own_o ken_n that_o protestant_n have_v renounct_v the_o certain_a way_n to_o bring_v down_o faith_n but_o that_o we_o renounct_v tradition_n of_o old_a be_v unacknowledged_a by_o we_o disputable_a and_o only_o knowable_a by_o skill_v they_o be_v not_o master_n of_o common_a sense_n then_o teach_v they_o they_o must_v guide_v themselves_o by_o reason_n they_o be_v capable_a of_o and_o not_o by_o reason_n of_o which_o they_o know_v nothing_o and_o that_o god_n require_v no_o more_o at_o their_o hand_n than_o they_o can_v do_v god_n goodness_n have_v provide_v for_o those_o weak_a people_n out_o of_o the_o very_a confession_n of_o tradition●s_a deserter_n certain_a mean_n to_o judge_v whether_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v catholic_n or_o protestant_n but_o to_o return_v whence_o we_o divert_v 21._o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o protestant_n own_o confession_n but_o the_o open_a profession_n of_o the_o catholic_n clergy_n in_o the_o very_a nick_n of_o the_o breach_n manifest_v our_o claim_n and_o constant_a adherence_n to_o tradition_n who_o declaration_n find_v in_o the_o synodal_n book_n 1559._o begin_v thus_o because_o by_o relation_n of_o public_a fame_n it_o have_v late_o come_v to_o our_o knowledge_n that_o many_o tenet_n of_o christian_a religion_n hitherto_o receive_v and_o approu●d_v by_o the_o public_a and_o 〈◊〉_d consent_v of_o christian_a nation_n and_o bring_v down_o by_o hand_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o we_o be_v call●d_v into_o doubt_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n where_o we_o find_v they_o stick_v firm_o to_o tradition_n and_o insist_v on_o this_o principle_n they_o proceed_v to_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n which_o they_o exhibit_v to_o the_o bishop_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o lord_n keeper_n but_o the_o state_n by_o power_n over-bearing_a the_o vote_n of_o the_o reverend_a convocation_n and_o persecute_v they_o for_o their_o constancy_n the_o breach_n ensue_v the_o catholic_n cleave_v fast_o to_o his_o old_a rule_n tradition_n the_o protestant_n choose_v a_o new_a one_o of_o scripture_n private_o interpret_v who_o vanity_n a_o little_a reason_n make_v they_o see_v but_o experience_n perfect_o find_v and_o relinquish_a the_o ancient_a rule_n so_o demonstrable_o self-evident_a secure_a and_o solid_a by_o which_o mean_n they_o become_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o only_a certain_a way_n to_o know_v christ_n sense_n that_o be_v from_o the_o root_n of_o faith_n and_o consequent_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n the_o gild_n of_o which_o fact_n neither_o human_a authority_n multitude_n prosperity_n continuance_n nor_o yet_o all_o their_o voluminous_a wordish_a excuse_n will_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o efface_v animadversion_n on_o dr._n pierce_n sermon_n also_o on_o mr._n whitby_n and_o mr._n stillingfleet_n where_o they_o touch_v the_o way_n lay_v in_o the_o forego_n discourse_n in_o three_o appendix_n psalm_n 63._o sagittae_fw-la parvulorum_fw-la factae_fw-la sunt_fw-la plagae_fw-la eorum_fw-la anno_fw-la dom._n 1665._o transition_n to_o the_o follow_a appendix_n i_o have_v finish_v my_o discourse_n how_o dexterous_o must_v be_v determine_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o my_o reader_n and_o confutation_n from_o m●●e_a adversary_n but_o i_o account_v those_o only_o my_o proper_a judge_n &_o competent_a adversary_n who_o lay_v their_o principle_n ere_o they_o discourse_v and_o weigh_v the_o efficaciousness_n of_o their_o testimony_n in_o the_o scale_n of_o reason_n ere_o they_o allege_v they_o if_o i_o find_v a_o man_n lay_v no_o principle_n of_o his_o own_o but_o suppose_v they_o and_o make_v account_n all_o man_n must_v admit_v they_o out_o of_o respect_n to_o he_o or_o his_o party_n and_o yet_o bend_v all_o his_o endeavour_n to_o cavil_v at_o principle_n lay_v by_o other_o to_o ascertain_v and_o establish_v the_o groundwork_n of_o christianity_n if_o i_o find_v one_o ignorant_a of_o or_o resolve_v against_o the_o onely-certain_a method_n and_o rule_n of_o discourse_n which_o be_v that_o no_o position_n deserve_v assent_v unless_o the_o connexion_n of_o its_o term_n be_v evident_a which_o must_v either_o be_v when_o they_o be_v evident_o connect_v of_o themselves_o of_o which_o nature_n ought_v to_o be_v all_o first_o principle_n or_o make_v evidently-connected_n by_o the_o interposition_n of_o some_o other_o which_o we_o call_v evident-by-consequence_n or_o deduction_n last_o if_o i_o find_v a_o man_n wed_v to_o parrat-talk_a of_o air_n and_o sound_n that_o he_o think_v it_o a_o rare_a thing_n to_o load_v margin_n with_o citation_n without_o first_o distinguish_v they_o and_o consider_v what_o strength_n each_o aught_o to_o have_v according_a to_o rational_a principle_n i_o decline_v such_o a_o empty_a soul_n for_o my_o judge_n and_o sleight_v he_o as_o my_o adversary_n and_o lest_o any_o shall_v impute_v this_o carriage_n to_o i_o
which_o rely_v on_o sensitive_a knowledge_n and_o those_o be_v of_o certain_a authority_n if_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o testator_n be_v unquestionable_a and_o the_o conveyance_n of_o his_o sincerelymeant_a knowledge_n to_o we_o be_v evident_a not_o otherwise_o 2_o lie_n note_n second_o that_o for_o the_o reason_n give_v citation_n from_o adversary_n and_o opinator_n signify_v nothing_o also_o those_o who_o word_n presume_v to_o express_v the_o witnesser_n sense_n be_v ambiguous_a or_o otherwise-interpretable_a or_o else_o their_o very_a letter_n uncertain_a as_o all_o be_v if_o the_o way_n of_o tradition_n be_v hold_v fallible_a thus_o much_o in_o common_a of_o citation_n as_o in_o themselves_o consider_v they_o next_o as_o make_v use_v of_o by_o d._n pierce_n we_o find_v he_o rely_v on_o they_o as_o on_o his_o principle_n to_o conclude_v against_o we_o or_o as_o he_o good_a man_n unfortunate_o call_v it_o demonstrate_v hence_o 3_o lie_v they_o must_v not_o be_v negative_a for_o such_o can_v conclude_v nothing_o 4_o lie_v they_o must_v not_o be_v false_a or_o evident_o signify_v another_o thing_n than_o they_o be_v produce_v for_o nor_o impertinent_a for_o than_o they_o be_v in_o both_o case_n quite_o beside_o the_o purpose_n 5_o lie_v they_o must_v be_v express_a and_o home_n to_o the_o point_n for_o principle_n must_v need_v nothing_o but_o themselves_o beside_o the_o application_n to_o infer_v the_o conclusion_n pretend_v to_o spring_v from_o they_o 9_o lie_v they_o must_v be_v void_a of_o ambiguity_n for_o principles_n must_v be_v either_o self-evident_a or_o at_o least_o make_v evident_a ere_o they_o can_v deserve_v to_o be_v produce_v or_o admit_v as_o such_o last_o principle_n be_v sense_n not_o sound_n or_o character_n and_o so_o their_o sense_n ought_v to_o be_v indisputable_a 7._o the_o first_o note_n evacuate_v at_o once_o all_o his_o citation_n from_o author_n that_o concern_v any_o point_n between_o we_o for_o he_o bring_v no_o certainty_n of_o any_o knowledge_n express_v to_o be_v build_v on_o sense_n that_o be_v no_o citation_n against_o we_o which_o in_o proper_a speech_n deserve_v to_o be_v call_v a_o testimony_n the_o second_o note_n particular_o invalidate_n those_o of_o the_o eight_o and_o nine_o forth_o the_o three_o those_o of_o the_o five_o sort_n the_o four_o those_o of_o the_o first_o and_o seven_o the_o five_o those_o of_o the_o five_o first_o sort_n and_o also_o those_o of_o the_o seven_o the_o six_o those_o of_o the_o second_o three_o and_o particular_o the_o eight_o the_o last_o note_n enervate_v the_o ten_o and_o indeed_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o our_o learned_a controvertist_n give_v other_o sense_n to_o those_o citation_n than_o what_o protestant_n assign_v they_o and_o maintain_v still_o those_o sense_n to_o be_v better_a than_o they_o 8._o in_o a_o word_n see_v all_o testimonial_a authority_n suppose_v knowledge_n in_o the_o author_n and_o all_o knowledge_n be_v either_o from_o sense_n call_v experience_n or_o else_o from_o evident_a connexion_n of_o term_n or_o reason_n and_o that_o this_o late_a knowledge_n be_v apt_a to_o make_v a_o master_n that_o be_v one_o fit_a to_o convince_v and_o teach_v another_o rational_o by_o intrinsecal_n medium_n or_o to_o cause_n science_n in_o he_o and_o so_o be_v unfit_a for_o testify_v and_o the_o former_a kind_n of_o knowledge_n only_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o extrinsecal_n medium_fw-la or_o apt_a to_o beget_v belief_n of_o the_o witness_n word_n in_o regard_n any_o person_n unacquainted_a otherwise_o with_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o point_n know_v by_o ordinary_a experience_n and_o common_a reason_n that_o man_n understanding_n may_v err_v but_o their_o sense_n right_o circumstance_v can_v it_o follow_v that_o no_o citation_n in_o proper_a speech_n deserve_v the_o name_n nor_o have_v the_o force_n or_o virtue_n of_o a_o testimony_n but_o those_o which_o be_v build_v on_o sense_n or_o experience_n this_o weigh_v reflect_v on_o the_o main_a i_o find_v not_o one_o ●●●ress_n testimony_n against_o any_o point_n of_o our_o ●aith_n engage_v sense_n that_o be_v not_o one_o which_o merit_v the_o name_n of_o a_o testimony_n or_o to_o be_v esteem_v a_o part_n of_o tradition_n that_o of_o s._n austin_n for_o communicate_v infant_n have_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o a_o testimony_n in_o it_o and_o deserve_v a_o more_o elaborate_a answer_n have_v its_o sense_n be_v unquestionable_a and_o the_o word_n cite_v from_o the_o father_n himself_o but_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o be_v disputable_a his_o expositor_n explicate_v s._n austin_n by_o himself_o in_o another_o place_n no●_n to_o mean_v oral_a manducation_n but_o virtual●●●ly_o ●●●ly_z which_o be_v do_v by_o baptism_n and_o withal_o cite_v as_o a_o private_a author_n sense_n concern_v s._n austin_n it_o fall_v under_o the_o 6_o and_o 8_o head_n of_o faulty_a or_o inconclusive_a citation_n and_o so_o be_v already_o answer_v 9_o this_o be_v the_o upshot_n of_o that_o famous_a sermon_n and_o now_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v what_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o intelligent_a person_n who_o examine_v thing_n by_o ground_n dr._n pierce_n have_v perform_v in_o this_o so_o high_o extol_v piece_n of_o his_o more_o than_o his_o dear_a brother_n and_o fellow-champion_n against_o the_o pope_n mr._n henry_n whistler_n only_o he_o have_v clad_v his_o little_a nothing_o in_o some_o kind_n of_o mock-rhetorick_n which_o like_o figleaf_n cover_v after_o a_o pitiful_a manner_n the_o nakedness_n of_o his_o empty_a discourse_n yet_o be_v even_o his_o rhetoric_n examine_v by_o the_o substantial_a rule_n of_o that_o art_n i_o doubt_v it_o will_v come_v of_o as_o ill_o as_o his_o proof_n for_o it_o be_v obvious_a to_o observe_v that_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o sermon_n be_v a-la-mode_o a_o school-boy's_a theme_n and_o that_o his_o style_n be_v far_o from_o even_a or_o spin_v on_o one_o thread_n instead_o of_o the_o thunder_n &_o lightning_n of_o strong_a and_o sententious_a sense_n astonish_v and_o move_v the_o auditor_n reason_n by_o the_o advantageous_a smartness_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o expression_n he_o give_v we_o a_o peal_n of_o ordinance_n charge_v with_o air_n a_o volley_n of_o thunder-thumping_a bombast_n able_a to_o make_v a_o solid_a man_n reason_n nauseate_a and_o this_o most_o inartificial_o place_v at_o the_o very_a entrance_n of_o his_o sermon_n §_o 2._o or_o else_o loud_o pulpit-beating_a invective_n and_o rail_n he_o make_v huge_a account_n of_o little_a quirk_a observation_n out_o of_o human_a author_n which_o have_v no_o imaginable_a force_n or_o purpose_v but_o to_o make_v a_o ostentation_n of_o the_o uncouthness_n of_o his_o read_n the_o gallantry_n of_o his_o three_o paragraph_n for_o ingenious_a surprise_v of_o reason_n erect_v and_o take_v the_o understanding_n we_o have_v wordish_a quibble_n quirk_n and_o paranomasias_n and_o those_o most_o evident_o contrary_a to_o art_n studious_o and_o industrious_o affect_v his_o confident_a say_n without_o proof_n make_v up_o half_o his_o sermon_n and_o his_o irony_n and_o sarcasm_n be_v the_o sauce_n to_o make_v all_o this_o windy_a meat_n go_v down_o 10._o i_o will_v close_v with_o note_v his_o excellent_a faculty_n in_o quote_v scripture_n to_o do_v which_o when_o the_o place_n be_v worth_a look_v as_o be_v bring_v to_o justify_v some_o passage_n we_o be_v about_o be_v grave_a and_o to_o some_o purpose_n but_o when_o no_o occasion_n or_o need_n invite_v upon_o the_o name_n any_o two_o or_o three_o word_n which_o hap_n to_o be_v in_o scripture_n to_o be_v still_o quote_v and_o trick_v the_o margin_n with_o book_n chapter_n and_o verse_n and_o relate_v star_n or_o little_a letter_n be_v a_o very_a empty_a piece_n of_o pageantry_n and_o most_o silly_o pedantical_a now_o our_o dr._n can_v talk_v of_o faith_n but_o he_o must_v add_v though_o most_o unsutable_o to_o his_o reformer_n in_o england_n to_o who_o it_o be_v most_o notorious_a no_o body_n deliver_v it_o which_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o jude_n 3_o shall_v ascertain_v it_o he_o can_v name_v the_o word_n which_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n but_o the_o margin_n shall_v direct_v you_o to_o mat._n 19_o 8._o the_o two_o word_n spend_v and_o be_v spend_v oblige_v he_o to_o let_v you_o know_v where_o to_o find_v they_o 2_o cor._n 12._o 15._o at_o the_o very_o name_v help_n and_o all_o sufficient_a two_o good_a honest_a word_n which_o may_v have_v be_v speak_v whether_o scripture_n have_v be_v or_o not_o he_o can_v for_o his_o heart_n hold_v but_o allege_v you_o for_o it_o 1._o cor._n 1._o 27._o and_o will_v needs_o though_o indeed_o very_o needless_o to_o we_o prove_v himself_o a_o weak_a instrument_n by_o a_o plain_a text_n 2_o cor._n 10._o 4._o the_o obvious_a and_o common_a word_n condemn_v out_o of_o their_o mouth_n must_v have_v a_o star_n of_o the_o first_o magnitude_n to_o light_v you_o
to_o a_o lesser_a one_o in_o the_o margin_n and_o that_o to_o luke_n 19_o 22._o and_o david_n cut_v of_o goliah_n head_n with_o his_o own_o sword_n a_o story_n know_v undoubted_o by_o all_o that_o be_v like_a to_o read_v his_o sermon_n shall_v be_v secure_v from_o be_v think_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o romance_n or_o knight-errantry_a by_o a_o punctual_a citation_n in_o the_o open_a margin_n 1_o sam._n 17._o 51._o and_o to_o omit_v diverse_a of_o the_o like_a pleasant_a strain_n lest_o any_o unbeliever_n shall_v be_v so_o impious_a as_o to_o doubt_v that_o his_o theopneust_n aholiab_n be_v a_o embroiderer_n you_o shall_v see_v it_o as_o plain_a as_o the_o nose_n on_o a_o man_n face_n in_o a_o express_a text_n exod._n 35._o 30._o 34._o 11._o but_o why_o insist_v i_o thus_o on_o so_o poor_a a_o foolery_n in_o a_o book_n i_o design_v for_o solid_a or_o what_o advantage_n can_v i_o gain_v to_o my_o cause_n by_o so_o sleight_v a_o animadversion_n i'answer_v ●tis_o my_o temper_n when_o i_o see_v a_o odd_a action_n do_v without_o reason_n to_o trace_v it_o to_o its_o original_a and_o to_o search_v after_o its_o proper_a cause_n and_o upon_o consideration_n i_o find_v none_o so_o proper_a for_o this_o effect_n as_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o humour_n of_o quote_v in_o d._n pierce_n and_o other_o of_o his_o brethren_n so_o strong_o possess_v they_o and_o even_o naturalize_v into_o they_o that_o so_o they_o be_v quote_v they_o matter_n not_o much_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o purpose_n or_o not_o this_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o whole_a bead-roll_n of_o his_o citation_n the_o useful_a part_n as_o he_o say_v of_o his_o whole_a performance_n and_o that_o not_o one_o of_o those_o which_o he_o call_v evidence_n be_v conclusive_a that_o be_v worth_a a_o straw_n or_o to_o purpose_n but_o because_o every_o one_o will_v not_o be_v capable_a to_o see_v it_o in_o those_o citation_n he_o bring_v for_o proof_n i_o let_v they_o see_v it_o in_o those_o his_o late_a quotation_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o he_o so_o pitiful_o betray_v his_o silly_a and_o vain_a humour_n of_o quote_v to_o no_o imaginable_a end_n but_o to_o satisfy_v his_o customary_a habit_n or_o fancy_n and_o as_o in_o his_o citation_n so_o in_o these_o imagine_v the_o application_n of_o they_o to_o his_o cause_n in_o stead_n of_o show_v it_o that_o i_o conceive_v no_o universitie-wit_n but_o will_v see_v in_o this_o carriage_n of_o he_o that_o dr._n pierce_n head_n be_v not_o too_o scientifical_a nor_o himself_o a_o fit_a man_n to_o to_o demonstrate_v against_o the_o papist_n second_o appendix_n animadversion_n on_o some_o passage_n in_o mr._n whitby_n 1._o i_o beg_v pardon_n of_o my_o reader_n for_o my_o late_a merriment_n and_o child_n play_n with_o airy_a bubble_n and_o feather_n both_o d._n pierce_n manner_n of_o writing_n and_o his_o carriage_n towards_o catholic_n merit_v this_o kind_n of_o return_n i_o hope_v the_o passage_n in_o mr._n whitby_n i_o have_v design_v to_o answer_v will_v give_v i_o occasion_n to_o speak_v more_o solid_o and_o that_o they_o may_v do_v so_o i_o will_v pick_v out_o those_o which_o aim_v at_o some_o point_n of_o concernment_n i_o have_v a_o particular_a respect_n for_o the_o person_n and_o be_o sorry_a his_o grow_a hopefulness_n receive_v a_o foil_n by_o his_o book_n against_o mr._n s._n c._n and_o this_o though_o a_o threefold_a disadvantage_n the_o badness_n of_o his_o cause_n the_o patronage_n of_o dr._n pierce_n malice_n and_o his_o impar_fw-la congressus_fw-la with_o so_o learned_a a_o antagonist_n 2._o my_o design_n lead_v i_o to_o take_v notice_n especial_o of_o that_o passage_n p._n 93._o sect._n 4._o where_o he_o begin_v a_o discourse_n about_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o reason_n and_o explicate_v rather_o than_o prove_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o what_o be_v his_o rule_n and_o guide_n to_o faith_n which_o because_o it_o look_v plausible_o yet_o be_v prudent_o neglect_v by_o mr._n s_o c._n who_o hear_v of_o more_o eminent_a antagonist_n write_v against_o he_o judge_v it_o wise_a to_o reserve_v himself_o to_o answer_v the_o protestanr_n second_v and_o best_a thought_n in_o they_o in_o case_n they_o be_v find_v to_o deserve_v it_o and_o because_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o challenge_n be_v make_v to_o all_o the_o romanist_n in_o the_o world_n and_o many_o passage_n in_o it_o light_a cross_n to_o the_o ground_n i_o have_v lay_v i_o take_v leave_v to_o consider_v and_o examine_v it_o my_o way_n in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o it_o especial_o at_o the_o beginning_n the_o discourse_n be_v right_o make_v but_o in_o other_o place_n he_o confound_v guide_n with_o rule_n power_n with_o motive_n and_o by_o strain_v a_o word_n in_o mr._n s._n c._n beyond_o its_o necessary_a signification_n impose_v on_o we_o a_o false_a tenet_n which_o he_o main_o build_v upon_o so_o that_o i_o be_o force_v to_o begin_v my_o answer_n by_o put_v down_o our_o true_a one_o which_o give_v faith_n and_o reason_n both_o their_o due_n this_o do_v his_o superstructute_n on_o that_o supposition_n will_v fall_v of_o themselves_o 3._o our_o tenet_n then_o be_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o same_o with_o belief_n that_o belief_n rely_v on_o authority_n and_o divine_a faith_n or_o belief_n on_o the_o divine_a authority_n as_o its_o motive_n and_o on_o the_o church_n as_o on_o the_o applier_n of_o the_o other_o to_o my_o understanding_n at_o next_o i_o hold_v that_o no_o authority_n deserve_v assent_n further_o than_o true_a reason_n give_v it_o to_o deserve_v and_o hence_o the_o divine_a authority_n be_v essential_a truth_n deserve_v in_o true_a reason_n if_o possible_a infinite_o intense_a assent_n or_o adhesion_n to_o its_o say_n from_o i_o and_o the_o church_n authority_n be_v find_v by_o my_o reason_n to_o be_v certain_a it_o apply_v with_o certainty_n that_o be_v close_o the_o divine_a authority_n to_o my_o understanding_n and_o so_o oblige_v it_o absolute_o to_o believe_v the_o truth_n god_n have_v tell_v and_o to_o submit_v whatever_o reason_n i_o may_v have_v against_o the_o object_n reveal_v to_o this_o all-overpowering_a authority_n of_o essential_a truth_n this_o be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n whence_o my_o particular_a reason_n be_v take_v nay_o far_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o i_o adhere_v more_o hearty_o and_o firm_o to_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n than_o to_o any_o conclusion_n of_o any_o science_n whatever_o because_o a_o more_o efficacious_a cause_n equal_o close_o apply_v be_v apt_a to_o produce_v a_o great_a effect_n and_o no_o cause_n be_v or_o can_v be_v in_o 〈◊〉_d reason_n comparable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o divine_a veracity_n in_o the_o point_n of_o cause_v assent_n which_o be_v close_o apply_v by_o i_o to_o the_o church_n assurance_n hence_o my_o faith_n be_v ever_o most_o rational_a because_o ●is_n 〈◊〉_d rational_a to_o believe_v a_o point_n for_o which_o the_o divine_a veracity_n be_v engage_v and_o high_o rational_a to_o believe_v the_o church_n assure_v i_o that_o it_o be_v engage_v for_o such_o and_o such_o point_n nor_o yet_o be_v the_o divine_a authority_n or_o the_o church_n as_o mr._n whitby_n p._n 96._o very_a mistake_o argue_v behold_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o my_o private_a reason_n for_o my_o belief_n of_o her_o infallibility_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a my_o private_a reason_n be_v behold_v to_o they_o for_o that_o judgement_n see_v i_o therefore_o come_v to_o have_v that_o judgement_n because_o those_o as_o object_n wrought_v upon_o my_o apprehension_n and_o imprint_v a_o conceit_n of_o they_o there_o as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o and_o so_o oblige_v my_o reason_n to_o conclude_v and_o my_o judgement_n to_o hold_v they_o such_o as_o they_o be_v this_o rational_a assent_n establish_v my_o faith_n against_o the_o assauld_n of_o any_o doubt_n from_o human_a reason_n rest_v assure_v th●●_n the_o same_o god_n who_o tell_v i_o this_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n else_o and_o have_v write_v all_o create_a truth_n in_o the_o thing_n he_o have_v make_v whence_o no_o create_a ●ruth_n can_v thwart_v my_o faith_n unless_o he_o can_v contradict_v himself_o which_o be_v impossible_a hence_o if_o i_o have_v true_a science_n i_o be_o certain_a to_o find_v no_o part_n of_o it_o opposite_a to_o my_o faith_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a conformable_a to_o it_o as_o be_v a_o child_n of_o the_o same_o parent_n essential_a truth_n if_o i_o have_v not_o true_a science_n i_o ought_v not_o to_o think_v so_o nothing_o therefore_o but_o my_o own_o overween_a can_v make_v i_o miscarry_v 4._o reason_n have_v thus_o play_v her_o part_n in_o bring_v i_o to_o faith_n desert_n i_o not_o yet_o while_o i_o act_n in_o it_o nor_o i_o she_o my_o act_n of_o belief_n be_v still_o rational_a because_o it_o be_v rational_a to_o believe_v at_o first_o
and_o my_o ground_n why_o i_o then_o believe_v rest_n still_o unchanged_a nay_o be_v unchangeable_a but_o yet_o reason_n act_n much_o different_o now_o then_o former_o before_o i_o come_v at_o faith_n she_o act_v about_o she_o own_o object_n motive_n or_o maxim_n by_o which_o she_o scan_v the_o authority_n we_o speak_v of_o but_o in_o act_n of_o faith_n she_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o object_n of_o those_o act_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n she_o be_v like_o a_o dim-sighted_a man_n who_o use_v his_o reason_n to_o find_v a_o trusty_a friend_n to_o lead_v he_o in_o the_o twilight_n and_o then_o rely_v on_o his_o guidance_n rational_o without_o use_v his_o own_o reason_n at_o all_o about_o the_o way_n itself_o to_o make_v this_o clear_a we_o may_v distinguish_v two_o sense_n in_o the_o word_n reason_n one_o as_o it_o be_v take_v for_o that_o natural_a faculty_n which_o constitute_v man_n which_o faculty_n never_o desert_n or_o aught_o to_o desert_v we_o in_o any_o action_n that_o be_v manly_n or_o virtuous_a the_o other_o as_o it_o be_v take_v for_o that_o power_n wrought_v upon_o by_o motive_n under_o its_o own_o ken_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n we_o call_v it_o human_a reason_n by_o which_o be_v not_o mean_v the_o natural_a power_n unactuate_v or_o abstract_o for_o then_o the_o word_n human_a be_v a_o tautology_n but_o reason_n as_o conversant_a with_o such_o object_n or_o inform_v by_o such_o knowledge_n as_o be_v common_o find_v within_o the_o sphere_n of_o our_o natural_a condition_n as_o man_n such_o as_o be_v those_o which_o beget_v science_n and_o this_o leave_v we_o when_o we_o have_v once_o find_v the_o authority_n now_o speak_v of_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n formal_o speak_v be_v out_o of_o her_o reach_n nor_o be_v she_o thus_o understand_v the_o motive_n of_o our_o assent_n to_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o authority_n only_o wherefore_o into_o authority_n only_o faith_n as_o such_o be_v resolve_v final_o though_o if_o you_o go_v about_o to_o resolve_v the_o rationalness_n of_o assent_v to_o the_o authority_n itself_o it_o will_v light_v into_o those_o evident_a reason_n which_o your_o natural_a power_n of_o reason_n as_o yet_o uninform_v by_o faith_n but_o by_o motive_n or_o maxim_n within_o its_o own_o sphere_n be_v capable_a to_o wield_v 5._o reason_n therefore_o take_v for_o my_o natural_a power_n be_v my_o eye_n or_o interior_a sight_n as_o inform_v by_o common_a principle_n or_o maxim_n antecedent_n to_o faith_n my_o guide_n to_o bring_v i_o to_o believe_v authority_n and_o those_o motive_n or_o maxim_n be_v the_o rule_n to_o my_o reason_n by_o attend_v to_o which_o she_o have_v virtue_n or_o skill_n to_o set_v she_o own_o thought_n right_a that_o be_v to_o guide_v i_o in_o my_o way_n to_o faith_n but_o when_o i_o have_v once_o come_v to_o believe_v authority_n that_o be_v come_v to_o faith_n not_o reason_n but_o authority_n be_v my_o guide_n for_o i_o follow_v authority_n and_o not_o my_o reason_n in_o judge_v what_o be_v faith_n what_o not_o and_o though_o the_o light_n of_o that_o natural_a power_n never_o desert_n i_o yet_o reason_n as_o rule_v by_o she_o own_o natural_a maxim_n be_v useless_a to_o i_o as_o a_o guide_n or_o those_o maxim_n as_o a_o rule_n for_o i_o apply_v neither_o of_o these_o to_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n to_o scan_v their_o verity_n or_o falsity_n by_o but_o pure_o rely_v upon_o authority_n and_o believe_v they_o authority_n then_o be_v my_o guide_n and_o in_o the_o infallibility_n of_o that_o authority_n consist_v the_o power_n or_o virtue_n it_o have_v to_o guide_v i_o right_n that_o be_v to_o regulate_v or_o rule_v i_o as_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a or_o as_o one_o who_o must_v have_v such_o certain_a ground_n of_o my_o assent_n as_o i_o may_v secure_o build_v my_o salvation_n on_o this_o authority_n then_o as_o it_o be_v infallible_a be_v also_o my_o rule_n in_o my_o believe_a or_o the_o rule_n of_o my_o faith_n this_o of_o my_o rule_n of_o faith_n in_o common_a against_o adversary_n of_o faith_n in_o common_a but_o with_o protestant_n who_o grant_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n and_o consequent_o his_o word_n or_o doctrine_n true_a the_o only_a rule_n and_o guido_n we_o need_v be_v to_o lead_v we_o into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o what_o he_o say_v and_o assure_v it_o to_o we_o we_o affirm_v then_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v the_o guide_n we_o follow_v and_o her_o infallibility_n consist_v in_o tradition_n our_o rule_n of_o faith_n hence_o all_o catholic_n profess_v her_o doctrine_n uninterrupted_o succeed_a from_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o so_o to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n hence_o with_o one_o voice_n they_o lay_v claim_v to_o christ_n gracious_a assistance_n to_o she_o in_o defend_v she_o from_o over-growing_a error_n against_o faith_n or_o heresy_n hence_o all_o profess_v to_o hear_v and_o follow_v she_o and_o pledge_v undoubting_o even_o the_o security_n of_o their_o salvation_n by_o rely_v on_o the_o certainty_n of_o her_o live_a voice_n for_o their_o tenet_n and_o on_o her_o discipline_n for_o the_o practice_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o though_o some_o schoolman_n make_v scripture_n a_o partial_a rule_n of_o faith_n yet_o they_o can_v mean_v only_o material_o not_o formal_o that_o be_v that_o some_o part_n of_o faith_n be_v signify_v by_o scripture_n letter_n not_o that_o scripture_n letter_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a secure_o to_o signify_v it_o to_o private_a understanding_n so_o as_o to_o beget_v that_o most_o strong_a &_o firm_a assent_n find_v in_o divine_a faith_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o this_o that_o all_o hold_v no_o scripture_n be_v of_o private_a interpretation_n all_o hold_v the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o her_o constant_a practice_n be_v the_o best_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n now_o faith_n be_v tenet_n and_o sense_n that_o must_v be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o ascertain_v we_o of_o christ_n sense_n not_o the_o material_a character_n which_o that_o certain_a interpreter_n we_o call_v the_o church_n work_v upon_o and_o by_o her_o practical_a tradition_n interpret_v 6._o it_o be_v high_a time_n now_o to_o look_v back_o upon_o dr._n pierce_n and_o his_o party_n how_o just_o they_o deal_v with_o we_o and_o how_o mistake_o they_o discourse_v when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n 7._o first_o by_o the_o tenor_n of_o his_o discourse_n he_o will_v seem_v to_o obtrude_v upon_o we_o a_o tenet_n which_o none_o but_o perfect_a madman_n can_v hold_v namely_o that_o we_o profess_v we_o have_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o believe_v the_o church_n which_o devolve_v to_o this_o that_o we_o must_v profess_v we_o have_v as_o much_o reason_n to_o believe_v a_o old_a wife_n dream_n as_o our_o faith_n since_o there_o can_v be_v no_o less_o reason_n than_o none_o at_o all_o and_o hence_o he_o will_v needs_o assure_v the_o reader_n that_o therefore_o the_o enthusiastic_a sectary_n be_v in_o part_n romish_a proselyte_n etc._n etc._n and_o indeed_o upon_o so_o gross_a a_o calumny_n lay_v down_o for_o his_o principle_n and_o a_o sober_a truth_n what_o may_v he_o not_o conclude_v with_o equal_a reason_n he_o may_v have_v infer_v that_o all_o bedlam_n be_v catholic_n and_o that_o to_o turn_v mad_a be_v to_o turn_v a_o romanist_n but_o his_o carriage_n to_o put_v this_o upon_o mr._n s._n c._n be_v strange_o unjust_a since_o he_o know_v and_o hint_n it_o that_o he_o write_v a_o book_n upon_o his_o declare_v himself_n catholic_n entitle_v motive_n of_o his_o conversion_n do_v he_o think_v the_o word_n motive_n do_v not_o signify_v reason_n or_o that_o to_o write_v a_o whole_a book_n of_o reason_n why_o he_o adheae_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n signify_v that_o he_o renounce_v all_o reason_n why_o he_o believe_v she_o 8._o next_o as_o for_o his_o own_o tenet_n he_o lay_v this_o for_o his_o ground_n that_o reason_n alone_o be_v judge_n in_o all_o case_n i_o will_v propose_v he_o one_o case_n and_o it_o be_v the_o existence_n of_o a_o trinity_n to_o work_v now_o with_o your_o reason_n about_o this_o object_n and_o see_v how_o you_o evince_v it_o i_o doubt_v your_o best_a reason_n will_v crack_v ere_o you_o make_v all_o end_n meet_v but_o you_o mean_v you_o must_v have_v reason_n to_o believe_v it_o i_o conceive_v speak_v proper_o you_o shall_v rather_o say_v you_o must_v have_v reason_n to_o believe_v the_o authority_n and_o authority_n to_o believe_v it_o for_o belief_n be_v as_o proper_o relative_a to_o authority_n as_o science_n be_v to_o a_o act_n of_o true_a reason_n or_o evidence_n whence_o it_o be_v as_o incongruous_a to_o say_v i_o must_v have_v reason_n to_o believe_v such_o a_o point_n as_o to_o say_v i_o know_v such_o a_o point_n scientifical_o by_o authority_n
part_n 1_o cap._n 6._o and_o the._n protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n cap._n 7._o i_o have_v quite_o lose_v mr._n stillingfleet_n and_o instead_o of_o he_o have_v find_v a_o dr._n hammond_n dr._n pierce_n or_o a_o dissuader_n who_o talk_v not_o out_o of_o nature_n or_o thing_n but_o word_n &_o imagination_n i_o plain_o discover_v there_o be_v not_o one_o proposition_n in_o those_o two_o discourse_n which_o can_v be_v a_o solid_a ground_n for_o a_o rational_a understanding_n that_o will_v be_v true_a to_o itself_o to_o settle_v and_o rely_v on_o and_o be_v desirous_a to_o show_v it_o have_v it_o not_o be_v uncivil_a to_o put_v my_o sickle_n into_o another_o man_n harvest_n and_o crop_v the_o victory_n due_a to_o another_o learning_n and_o industry_n victory_n i_o say_v for_o he_o that_o defend_v his_o cause_n no_o better_o in_o effect_n yield_v it_o lose_v yet_o i_o beg_v leave_n of_o the_o judicious_a author_n of_o labyrinthus_n cantuariensis_n to_o maintain_v one_o breach_n where_o i_o find_v myself_o more_o direct_o assault_v oral_a tradition_n be_v the_o post_n i_o have_v take_v upon_o i_o to_o explicate_v further_o &_o defend_v because_o i_o conceive_v it_o the_o solid_a ground_n on_o which_o the_o church_n or_o all_o catholic_n both_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a rely_v as_o faithful_a however_o some_o schoolman_n abound_v in_o their_o own_o sense_n ground_n also_o their_o explication_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n on_o something_o beside_o 2._o mr_n stillingfleet_n then_o part_n 3_o chap._n 5._o §_o 4_o &_o 5._o set_n himself_o to_o oppose_v oral_a tradition_n who_o infallibility_n he_o oppose_v to_o doctrinal_a infallibility_n in_o pope_n or_o council_n where_o if_o by_o doctrinal_a infallibility_n he_o mean_v that_o which_o they_o have_v as_o doctor_n or_o scholar_n he_o may_v reflect_v that_o no_o catholic_n make_v such_o a_o infallibility_n proper_a to_o the_o church_n or_o church-governor_n as_o such_o however_o it_o may_v be_v sometime_o necessary_a to_o proceed_v upon_o it_o in_o some_o signal_n occasion_n now_o take_v away_o this_o infallibility_n there_o be_v none_o leave_v but_o the_o infallibility_n of_o tradition_n perform_v by_o testify_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o we_o have_v but_o two_o way_n of_o ordinary_a knowledge_n by_o act_n of_o our_o soul_n or_o operation_n on_o our_o body_n that_o be_v by_o reason_n and_o experience_n the_o former_a of_o which_o belong_v to_o speculater_n or_o doctor_n the_o second_o to_o deliverer_n of_o what_o be_v receive_v or_o to_o testifier_n whence_o m._n stillingfleet_n may_v see_v he_o stumble_v at_o the_o very_a threshold_n by_o counterpose_v doctrinal_a infallibility_n to_o traditionary_a since_o that_o which_o we_o call_v ecclesia_fw-la docens_fw-la profess_v constant_o to_o ground_n herself_o on_o tradition_n witness_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o every_o session_n where_o she_o define_v faith_n 3._o no_o wonder_n then_o if_o ground_v on_o this_o mistake_n mr_n stillingfleet_n declare_v himself_o unsatisfied_a he_o ask_v therefore_o whether_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v what_o the_o present_a church_n deliver_v to_o be_v infallible_a i_o understand_v he_o not_o have_v he_o instead_o of_o the_o word_n infallible_a put_v receive_v as_o deliver_v ever_o or_o infallible_o true_a i_o have_v for_o fallibility_n and_o infallibility_n belong_v to_o the_o know_v power_n or_o the_o person_n that_o have_v it_o not_o to_o the_o object_n the_o object_n be_v neither_o deceive_v nor_o not_o deceive_v but_o we_o well_o but_o suppose_v he_o mean_v by_o it_o deliver_v ever_o or_o which_o be_v equivalent_a certain_o true_a for_o what_o come_v from_o christ_n must_v be_v so_o in_o that_o case_n we_o answer_v affirmative_o he_o ask_v again_o on_o what_o account_n be_v he_o bind_v to_o believe_v it_o and_o he_o make_v our_o answer_n to_o be_v because_o the_o present_a church_n can_v be_v deceive_v in_o what_o the_o church_n of_o the_o former_a age_n believe_v nor_o that_o in_o the_o precedent_n and_o so_o up_o till_o christ._n this_o be_v indeed_o part_n of_o our_o answer_n the_o other_o part_n be_v that_o the_o church_n in_o no_o age_n can_v conspire_v against_o her_o knowledge_n to_o deceive_v that_o age_n immediate_o follow_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n evident_a in_o a_o manner_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n upon_o this_o he_o fall_v into_o two_o new_a demand_n which_o take_v up_o this_o whole_a paragraph_n 4._o the_o first_o be_v how_o we_o can_v assure_v he_o the_o present_a church_n oblige_v he_o to_o believe_v nothing_o but_o only_a what_o and_o so_o far_o as_o it_o receive_v from_o the_o former_a church_n i_o answer_v by_o her_o manifest_a practice_n never_o refuse_v communion_n to_o any_o man_n that_o can_v approve_v himself_o to_o believe_v all_o the_o former_a age_n do_v i_o can_v here_o distinguish_v the_o word_n believe_v but_o i_o refer_v it_o till_o i_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la he_o proceed_v what_o evidence_n can_v you_o bring_v to_o convince_v i_o both_o that_o the_o church_n always_o observe_v this_o rule_n and_o can_v never_o be_v deceive_v in_o it_o for_o the_o late_a i_o hope_v i_o need_v bring_v no_o great_a evidence_n than_o this_o that_o man_n in_o all_o age_n have_v eye_n ear_n and_o other_o sense_n also_o common_a reason_n and_o as_o much_o memory_n as_o to_o remember_v their_o own_o name_n and_o frequently-inculcated_n action_n if_o you_o disprove_v this_o i_o doubt_v we_o have_v lose_v mankind_n the_o subject_n we_o be_v speak_v of_o and_o till_o you_o disprove_v it_o neither_o i_o nor_o any_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n can_v doubt_v that_o this_o rule_n depend_v on_o testify_v that_o be_v sense_n or_o experience_n can_v possible_o permit_v man_n to_o be_v deceivable_a the_o former_a part_n i_o shall_v speak_v to_o when_o i_o come_v to_o show_v the_o obligation_n not_o to_o vary_v from_o faith_n his_o scruple_n spring_v hence_o that_o he_o see_v the_o roman_a church_n assert_n thing_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la in_o one_o age_n which_o be_v not_o in_o another_o etc._n etc._n that_o this_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n and_o the_o denier_n ill-looked_a on_o i_o beg_v leave_n to_o distinguish_v the_o word_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la which_o may_v either_o mean_a christian_a faith_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n teach_v by_o christ_n and_o than_o you_o see_v it_o be_v nonsense_n to_o say_v they_o can_v be_v in_o one_o age_n and_o not_o in_o another_o for_o what_o christ_n have_v teach_v he_o have_v teach_v and_o the_o preteritness_n of_o the_o thing_n have_v so_o fix_v its_o existence_n to_o its_o proper_a time_n that_o it_o be_v not_o now_o obnoxious_a to_o variation_n quod_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la infectum_fw-la fieri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la or_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la may_v mean_v obligatory_a to_o be_v believe_v in_o this_o late_a sense_n none_o i_o think_v deny_v thing_n may_v be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la in_o one_o age_n and_o not_o in_o another_o in_o the_o former_a sense_n none_o hold_v it_o what_o be_v now_o become_v of_o your_o difficulty_n i_o believe_v you_o be_v in_o some_o wonderment_n and_o think_v i_o elude_v it_o rather_o than_o answer_v it_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o unperplex_v you_o 5._o christianity_n aim_v not_o to_o make_v we_o beast_n but_o more_o perfect_o man_n and_o the_o perfection_n of_o our_o manhood_n consist_v in_o use_v our_o reason_n since_o than_o natural_a consequence_n be_v apt_a to_o spring_v from_o natural_a principle_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o reason_n and_o we_o can_v but_o think_v that_o the_o consequence_n apt_a to_o flow_v from_o supernatural_a principle_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n deliver_v down_o from_o christ_n only_a which_o be_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la in_o the_o former_a sense_n be_v of_o incomparable_o great_a excellency_n than_o natural_a truth_n it_o follow_v that_o christianity_n or_o christian_a faith_n be_v so_o far_o from_o hinder_v the_o faithful_a from_o deduce_v out_o of_o they_o that_o both_o out_o of_o their_o nature_n as_o supreme_a truth_n or_o principle_n and_o out_o of_o their_o high_a excellency_n they_o invite_v and_o prompt_v most_o strong_o to_o it_o now_o these_o point_n deduct_v out_o of_o principle_n of_o faith_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o former_a those_o which_o need_v no_o more_o but_o common_a sense_n or_o the_o ordinary_a natural_a light_n of_o reason_n to_o discover_v their_o arise_v thence_o nor_o any_o piece_n of_o skill_n or_o science_n to_o infer_v they_o but_o be_v see_v by_o the_o bare_a principle_n of_o faith_n or_o rather_o in_o it_o be_v indeed_o but_o a_o branch_n or_o part_n of_o that_o principle_n the_o late_a be_v those_o which_o need_n beside_o the_o maxim_n of_o some_o science_n get_v by_o speculation_n to_o infer_v they_o a_o example_n of_o the_o former_a sort_n be_v that_o against_o the_o monothelite_n of_o christ_n have_v a_o human_a will_n for_o common_a experience_n tell_v
synod_n in_o its_o definition_n where_o he_o will_v hear_v of_o no_o such_o toy_n as_o new_a revelation_n but_o direct_o the_o contrary_a every_o session_n where_o faith_n be_v define_v profess_v to_o build_v on_o tradition_n teach_v and_o preach_v that_o be_v oral_a tradition_n ever_o always_o from_o the_o beginning_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v not_o new_a but_o the_o old-and_a ever-faith_n if_o you_o will_v combat_v our_o church_n here_o you_o have_v she_o fall_v to_o work_v but_o you_o find_v some_o schoolman_n opine_v also_o infallibility_n in_o some_o other_o mean_n beside_o tradition_n and_o judge_v this_o tenet_n easy_o confute_v you_o level_v your_o blow_n at_o it_o because_o the_o other_o be_v out_o of_o your_o reach_n and_o will_v make_v this_o tenet_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o seem_v to_o oppose_v the_o church_n herself_o you_o will_v disgrace_v this_o way_n of_o tradition_n as_o maintain_v but_o by_o a_o few_o and_o those_o blemish_v person_n how_o far_o be_v you_o wide_o of_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v the_o way_n every_o catholic_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n none_o except_v hold_v and_o follow_v for_o my_o part_n i_o disavow_v the_o maintain_v any_o point_n or_o affect_v any_o way_n which_o be_v not_o assent_v to_o by_o all_o and_o this_o not_o as_o opinion_n but_o deep_o root_v in_o their_o heart_n as_o infallible_o certain_a schoolman_n at_o liberty_n question_v personal_a infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n some_o grant_v it_o not_o to_o he_o and_o his_o roman_a clergy_n some_o question_n that_o of_o a_o provincial_a synod_n nay_o some_o who_o book_n be_v extant_a and_o yet_o uncensured_a maintain_v even_o a_o general_n council_n may_v possible_o err_v but_o not_o one_o i_o have_v hear_v or_o read_v of_o affirm_v that_o tradition_n or_o the_o live_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n essential_a can_v err_v for_o in_o do_v so_o he_o call_v all_o his_o faith_n in_o question_n and_o so_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian._n 9_o this_o then_o be_v hold_v by_o all_o hold_v firm_o and_o that_o it_o be_v absolute_o infallible_a so_o that_o in_o no_o case_n it_o can_v err_v the_o other_o only_o by_o some_o &_o faint_o in_o comparison_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o faithful_n permit_v they_o ●o_o be_v question_v nay_o not_o hold_v at_o all_o infallible_a but_o upon_o supposal_n of_o certain_a condition_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o which_o also_o divine_v differ_v mr._n stillingfleet_n and_o other_o protestant_a writer_n may_v see_v what_o they_o have_v to_o do_v if_o they_o will_v candid_o impugn_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o not_o trifle_v away_o time_n in_o wrangle_v with_o some_o private_a opinator_n i_o have_v set_v they_o a_o fair_a mark_n in_o my_o discourse_n if_o they_o will_v speak_v to_o the_o point_n and_o the_o end_n of_o my_o preface_n have_v tell_v they_o how_o to_o do_v it_o if_o they_o overthrow_v this_o all_o the_o other_o infallibility_n now_o speak_v of_o will_v fall_v with_o it_o if_o not_o not_o only_o this_o of_o universal_a tradition_n will_v stand_v but_o also_o all_o the_o other_o infallibility_n will_v in_o virtue_n of_o it_o be_v establish_v on_o a_o firm_a basis_n than_o any_o who_o begin_v not_o with_o and_o settle_v the_o first_o principle_n in_o controversy_n can_v ever_o give_v they_o this_o foundation_n than_o they_o must_v either_o subvert_v or_o they_o may_v fear_v the_o papist_n will_v build_v such_o superstructure_n on_o it_o as_o will_v reach_v to_o heaven_n it_o rise_v apace_o and_o have_v advance_v many_o story_n in_o a_o small_a time_n 10._o by_o this_o discourse_n all_o mr._n stillingfleet_n if_o his_o which_o follow_v have_v their_o answer_n and_o he_o will_v see_v the_o knot_n easy_o lose_v in_o distinguish_v the_o word_n other_o by_o which_o if_o he_o mean_v disparate_a unconnect_v or_o unimply_v point_n of_o faith_n no_o divine_v of_o any_o number_n or_o account_n hold_v they_o can_v be_v de_fw-fr novo_fw-la much_o less_o our_o church_n if_o involve_v or_o imply_v in_o the_o main_a point_n he_o must_v show_v it_o be_v absolute_o another_o and_o not_o rather_o a_o piece_n or_o part_n of_o the_o imply_v one_o as_o homo_fw-la est_fw-la animal_n be_v a_o part_n of_o homo_fw-la est_fw-la animal_n rationale_fw-la in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v he_o consider_v what_o logic_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o conclusion_n be_v in_o the_o premise_n which_o reflection_n will_v much_o unblunder_v his_o thought_n and_o withal_o that_o it_o be_v most_o unreasonable_a to_o deny_v the_o church_n the_o liberty_n to_o take_v asunder_o her_o own_o thought_n and_o clear_v they_o upon_o occasion_n by_o represent_v their_o part_n distinct_o or_o in_o many_o proposition_n which_o be_v invole_v before_o in_o some_o one_o a_o privilege_n nature_n grant_v all_o mankind_n as_o a_o necessary_a conseqent_n to_o their_o work_n by_o abstract_a notion_n this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o to_o regard_n or_o view_v the_o same_o thing`now_v on_o one_o side_n then_o on_o the_o other_o 11._o his_o second_o chief_a demand_n be_v what_o security_n be_v there_o that_o in_o no_o age_n of_o the_o church_n any_o practice_n shall_v come_v in_o which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o precedent_n i_o answer_v our_o practice_n spring_v from_o our_o tenet_n if_o then_o he_o mean_v ecclesiastical_a practice_n that_o be_v such_o as_o spring_v from_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n there_o be_v no_o security_n at_o all_o for_o these_o be_v to_o come_v in_o anew_o as_o oft_o as_o the_o necessity_n of_o discipline_n or_o government_n require_v it_o if_o he_o mean_v such_o practice_n as_o spring_v from_o point_n of_o faith_n teach_v by_o christ_n there_o be_v the_o same_o security_n no_o such_o new_a practice_n can_v be_v introduct_n as_o there_o be_v that_o no_o new_a christian_a tenet_n can_v come_v in_o now_o these_o late_a practice_n be_v those_o we_o make_v use_v of_o in_o tradition_n as_o make_v faith_n visible_a be_v as_o it_o be_v its_o body_n he_o must_v mean_v then_o of_o these_o practice_n to_o do_v his_o discourse_n any_o service_n and_o so_o of_o these_o he_o question_n whether_o the_o descendants_n hold_v themselves_o bind_v unalterable_o to_o observe_v what_o their_o forefather_n do_v otherwise_o to_o know_v bare_o what_o they_o do_v be_v not_o enough_o to_o make_v they_o follow_v it_o he_o argue_v well_o to_o smooth_a as_o many_o rub_n as_o i_o can_v that_o so_o we_o may_v have_v no_o difficulty_n but_o our_o main_a one_o i_o will_v reflect_v on_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n unalterable_o for_o to_o introduce_v new_a practice_n consequent_a to_o the_o former_a be_v to_o propagate_v enlarge_v extend_v and_o so_o strengthen_v they_o not_o to_o alter_v they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o to_o discourse_v consequent_o to_o a_o principle_n or_o tenet_n be_v so_o far_o from_o alter_v it_o that_o by_o the_o contexture_n of_o other_o truth_n with_o it_o it_o corroborate_v and_o establish_v it_o more_o unalterable_o its_o self_n they_o must_v then_o be_v practice_n not_o of_o a_o subordinate_a but_o a_o opposite_a nature_n to_o christian_a one_o which_o can_v be_v fear_v to_o alter_v christian_a practice_n the_o question_n than_o be_v whether_o child_n or_o the_o succeed_v age_n hold_v themselves_o still_o bind_v not_o to_o bring_v in_o practice_n and_o tenet_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o precedent_n age._n and_o the_o affirmative_a be_v most_o evident_a in_o case_n they_o hold_v those_o tenet_n which_o principled_a those_o action_n true_a teach_v by_o christ_n and_o command_v by_o he_o as_o the_o way_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o heaven_n and_o those_o practice_n consequent_a if_o then_o they_o hold_v the_o deliver_v doctrine_n christ_n they_o can_v not_o but_o hold_v themselves_o oblige_v not_o to_o alter_v it_o nor_o consequent_o its_o practice_n so_o that_o our_o question_n be_v restrain_v to_o to_o a_o narrow_a compass_n and_o the_o only_a difficulty_n now_o be_v whether_o they_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o forefather_n to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n or_o no._n 12._o i_o be_o hearty_o glad_a so_o acute_a a_o adversary_n as_o mr._n stillingfleet_n and_o one_o choose_v out_o if_o i_o be_o inform_v right_a as_o a_o person_n conceive_v the_o able_a to_o write_v against_o catholic_n have_v so_o candid_o confess_v here_o p._n 629._o that_o the_o only_a thing_n to_o be_v prove_v in_o this_o case_n be_v that_o every_o age_n in_o the_o church_n and_o all_o person_n in_o it_o look_v upon_o themselves_o as_o oblige_v not_o to_o vary_v in_o any_o thing_n from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o precedent_n age._n he_o offer_v i_o my_o choice_n of_o three_o way_n to_o prove_v it_o i_o accept_v of_o the_o way_n of_o reason_n he_o press_v for_o a_o demonstrative_a medium_n to_o prove_v it_o yet_o seem_v to_o dislike_v our_o pretence_n
from_o mistakableness_n it_o follow_v demonstrative_o it_o be_v testify_v and_o to_o come_v close_o to_o our_o purpose_n that_o the_o descendants_n in_o each_o age_n to_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o world_n have_v the_o same_o obligation_n to_o believe_v their_o immediate_a forefather_n say_v it_o be_v testify_v by_o the_o former_a as_o those_o of_o the_o three_o age_n to_o believe_v the_o second_o or_o the_o second_o the_o first_o 16._o who_o ever_o look_v into_o rational_a nature_n with_o even_o that_o ordinary_a knowledge_n with_o which_o the_o rude_a person_n almost_o that_o life_n do_v upon_o material_a nature_n will_v discern_v the_o same_o necessity_n or_o obligation_n of_o continue_v down_o by_o the_o way_n of_o testify_v notorious_a and_o important_a matter_n of_o fact_n fix_v at_o first_o in_o the_o mind_n and_o fancy_n of_o a_o universality_n by_o the_o existence_n of_o the_o thing_n work_v on_o their_o sense_n as_o that_o in_o a_o long_a chain_n of_o iron_n one_o link_n draw_v shall_v draw_v all_o the_o rest_n or_o that_o the_o turn_v the_o first_o wheel_n shall_v move_v a_o thousand_o distant_a one_o depend_v on_o its_o motion_n nor_o doubt_v i_o but_o it_o will_v be_v make_v full_a as_o evident_a when_o rational_a soul_n come_v to_o set_v themselves_o to_o reflect_v serious_o on_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o procedure_v to_o action_n a_o speculation_n few_o protestant_n be_v acquaint_v with_o bookishness_n and_o much_o read_n be_v only_o in_o vogue_n with_o the_o talk_a tribe_n among_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n mr._n stillingfleet_n may_v see_v in_o the_o instance_n now_o put_v that_o be_v in_o the_o strong_a persuasion_n of_o alexander_n victory_n yet_o continue_v by_o tradition_n that_o there_o be_v a_o obligation_n in_o one_o age_n to_o believe_v another_o when_o they_o proceed_v as_o witness_n and_o this_o not_o only_o of_o what_o they_o see_v but_o of_o what_o other_o tell_v they_o they_o see_v and_o of_o what_o some_o affirm_v they_o be_v tell_v by_o other_o that_o the_o age_n before_o they_o see_v and_o so_o downward_o and_o that_o as_o the_o impulsive_a force_n be_v communicate_v from_o the_o mover_n hand_n to_o the_o farthest-distant-wheel_n by_o the_o application_n of_o the_o intermediate_v one_o the_o solid_a or_o inflexible_a nature_n of_o the_o matter_n oblige_v the_o next_o wheel_n to_o propagate_v its_o motion_n so_o the_o existence_n of_o the_o thing_n move_v the_o first_o experimental_a perciever_n of_o it_o and_o that_o solid_a notion_n which_o fix_v every_o truth_n be_v the_o virtue_n which_o run_v through_o and_o give_v force_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v apply_v by_o universal_a witness_v a_o plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n or_o other_o testimony_n from_o each_o age_n to_o the_o other_o as_o great_a a_o tie_v to_o assent_v as_o human_a nature_n be_v capable_a of_o by_o natural_a mean_n for_o that_o existence_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v the_o virtue_n which_o make_v this_o persuasion_n so_o solid_a and_o firm_a beside_o what_o be_v say_v be_v see_v by_o this_o that_o be_v it_o deliver_v only_o as_o a_o opinion_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o its_o strong_a conveyance_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o elevate_v it_o beyond_o opinion_n for_o the_o strong_a that_o have_v be_v the_o more_o perfect_o it_o have_v be_v hold_v opinion_n still_o the_o existence_n then_o of_o the_o thing_n have_v virtue_n to_o oblige_v to_o a_o full_a persuasion_n the_o thing_n be_v so_o when_o apply_v with_o certainty_n the_o testification_n of_o the_o precedent_a age_n be_v a_o certain_a applier_n of_o it_o and_o undoubtable_a that_o be_v oblige_v to_o belief_n therefore_o the_o next_o age_n be_v in_o such_o matter_n convey_v down_o this_o way_n as_o strong_o oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o forego_n as_o reason_n can_v oblige_v it_o that_o be_v by_o see_v effect_n impossible_a to_o be_v without_o the_o existence_n of_o forego_v testification_n nor_o they_o final_o without_o the_o existence_n of_o the_o thing_n 17._o i_o expect_v now_o what_o mr_n stillingfleet_n will_v reply_v to_o this_o discourse_n will_v he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n lay_v to_o oblige_v the_o after-comer_n to_o believe_v the_o fore-goer_n that_o alexander_n conquer_v asia_n but_o that_o it_o happen_v so_o by_o chance_n what_o will_v he_o say_v then_o to_o thousand_o other_o such_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o indeed_o all_o that_o be_v do_v long_o ago_o all_o which_o must_v either_o be_v hold_v oblige_o this_o way_n or_o none_o see_v cowll_fw-mi 24._o beside_o the_o cause_n proper_a to_o work_v on_o a_o rational_a nature_n be_v reason_n to_o say_v then_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n able_a to_o make_v we_o believe_v alexander_n thus_o conquer_v be_v to_o say_v there_o be_v no_o reason_n for_o it_o and_o chance_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o cause_n unforeseen_a by_o we_o to_o say_v all_o believe_v it_o by_o chance_n signify_v none_o s●e_v any_o reason_n why_o they_o believe_v it_o which_o make_v 〈◊〉_d the_o world_n ass_n or_o have_v i_o not_o hit_v on_o the_o right_a cause_n i_o shall_v thank_v mr_n stillingfleet_n to_o help_v i_o out_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n assure_v he_o that_o whatever_o cause_n he_o assign_v oblige_v poposterity_n to_o believe_v ancestor_n in_o this_o shall_v strengthen_v tradition_n perhaps_o he_o will_v say_v they_o may_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v such_o history_n deliver_v yet_o not_o deliver_v point_n of_o faith_n i_o shall_v wonder_v at_o the_o position_n but_o because_o i_o foresee_v he_o be_v like_a to_o recur_v to_o this_o for_o he_o must_v be_v force_v to_o say_v either_o this_o or_o what_o be_v worse_o i_o shall_v prepare_v against_o it_o by_o parallel_v the_o obligation_n to_o believe_v this_o deliver_v history_n to_o the_o obligation_n to_o believe_v christian_a faith_n deliver_v 18._o to_o do_v this_o more_o ample_o we_o will_v consider_v christ_n doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o whole_a complexion_n of_o circumstance_n express_v in_o that_o common_a verse_n quis_fw-la quid_fw-la ubi_fw-la quibus_fw-la auxiliis_fw-la cur_n quomodo_fw-la quando_fw-la quis_fw-la who_o be_v the_o author_n and_o subject_n of_o this_o faith_n thus_o to_o be_v deliver_v not_o a_o poor_a mortal_a but_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o eternal_a father_n not_o a_o ambitious_a self-extolling_a man_n but_o a_o self-humbled_n god_n come_v down_o from_o his_o heaven_n to_o be_v the_o world_n saviour_n and_o master_n every_o of_o who_o word_n and_o action_n be_v infinite_o to_o be_v admire_v and_o consequent_o require_v to_o be_v have_v in_o perpetual_a remembrance_n quid_fw-la what_o thing_n be_v it_o which_o be_v deliver_v or_o testify_v a_o doctrine_n contain_v principle_n of_o the_o new_a life_n they_o be_v to_o lead_v as_o christian_n and_o so_o practical_a notwithstanding_o the_o majesty_n of_o its_o abstruseness_n a_o doctrine_n connatural_a and_o suitable_a to_o reason_n man_n true_a nature_n and_o so_o apt_a to_o sink_v into_o he_o &_o not_o be_v easy_o relinquishable_a a_o doctrine_n which_o bear_v in_o its_o very_a notion_n to_o be_v a_o guide_n towards_o eternal_a bliss_n and_o consequent_o that_o to_o forsake_v it_o be_v the_o way_n to_o eternal_a misery_n which_o therefore_o oblige_v father_n to_o teach_v it_o and_o child_n to_o esteem_v themselves_o bind_v to_o learn_v it_o and_o hold_v to_o it_o last_o a_o doctrine_n all_o make_v up_o of_o most_o astonish_a miracle_n and_o wonder_n and_o so_o apt_a to_o strike_v a_o deep_a sense_n of_o reverence_n into_o heart_n already_o imbue_v with_o it_o such_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o call_v christ_n doctrine_n imprint_v on_o the_o sensarion_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d age_n of_o christian_n not_o a_o pitiful_a story_n of_o a_o alexander_n or_o caesar_n of_o sleight_n concern_v wonderment_n or_o practical_a usefulness_n but_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o other_o like_o a_o tale_n of_o a_o tub_n which_o no_o hurt_n be_v do_v if_o it_o go_v in_o at_o one_o ear_n and_o out_o a●_n the_o other_o 19_o vbi_fw-la when_o be_v this_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o preach_v this_o doctrine_n perform_v in_o all_o even_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o not_o only_o in_o a_o piece_n of_o europe_n and_o in_o asia_n and_o this_o open_o especial_o in_o rome_n the_o world_n metropolis_n whence_o it_o can_v easy_o and_o effectual_o spread_v into_o the_o rest_n nay_o in_o the_o very_a face_n of_o tyrant_n which_o thing_n give_v it_o a_o perfect_a visibility_n and_o last_o in_o every_o private_a family_n it_o be_v teach_v and_o put_v in_o practice_n which_o make_v it_o beyond_o dispute_n sensible_n and_o maniable_a as_o far_o as_o it_o conduce_v to_o christian_a life_n quibus_fw-la auxiliis_fw-la by_o what_o help_n or_o mean_n by_o most_o stupendous_a miracle_n powerful_a preach_v and_o heavenly_a live_n conformable_o to_o those_o principle_n which_o make_v those_o principle_n or_o faith_n
to_o salvation_n so_o that_o to_o vary_v from_o it_o or_o hold_v or_o practice_v the_o contrary_a be_v the_o way_n to_o eternal_a misery_n be_v all_o oblige_v to_o believe_v and_o act_v as_o their_o forefather_n do_v and_o not_o introduce_v contrary_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n to_o those_o they_o have_v receive_v have_v it_o be_v i_o say_v thus_o propose_v there_o have_v be_v no_o such_o cause_n of_o wonderment_n but_o all_o these_o that_o be_v indeed_o all_o of_o weight_n in_o the_o point_n be_v quite_o leave_v out_o such_o poor_a shift_n even_o the_o best_a wit_n must_v be_v drive_v to_o when_o they_o will_v maintain_v a_o false_a cause_n 25._o one_o word_n to_o m._n stillingfleet_n he_o have_v challenge_v we_o to_o make_v out_o this_o obligation_n to_o belief_n as_o the_o only_a thing_n we_o be_v to_o prove_v in_o the_o traditionary_a way_n he_o have_v offer_v we_o the_o choice_n of_o our_o weapon_n either_o reason_n particular_a testimony_n or_o universal_a tradition_n i_o have_v accept_v his_o offer_n choose_v my_o weapon_n and_o give_v here_o the_o first_o blow_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o now_o run_v the_o field_n but_o return_v a_o answer_n to_o my_o discourse_n in_o the_o way_n of_o reason_n which_o i_o have_v choose_v by_o his_o offer_n i_o be_o sorry_a for_o his_o sake_n my_o reflection_n here_o be_v not_o more_o elaborate_a be_v send_v to_o the_o press_n in_o loose_a quarter_n of_o sheet_n as_o soon_o as_o write_v more_o time_n not_o be_v allow_v i_o nor_o i_o hope_v needful_a to_o answer_v such_o mistake_n only_o i_o request_v he_o when_o he_o reply_v to_o take_v along_o with_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o subjecta_fw-la materia_fw-la the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n we_o speak_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o deliver_v it_o and_o the_o necessary_a circumstance_n which_o give_v weight_n to_o both_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v above_o and_o i_o promise_v he_o god_n assist_v i_o a_o very_a serious_a reply_n 26._o ere_o i_o quite_o leave_v this_o matter_n i_o desire_v to_o take_v the_o reader_n along_o with_o i_o in_o my_o quest_n for_o a_o reason_n or_o proper_a cause_n why_o so_o judicious_a a_o person_n as_o mr._n stillingfleet_n can_v come_v to_o doubt_v of_o such_o a_o obligation_n in_o posterity_n to_o believe_v their_o ancestor_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n or_o a_o matter_n deliver_v to_o have_v be_v not_o deem_v or_o think_v but_o do_v or_o which_o be_v equivalent_a be_v its_o necessary_a effect_n see_v or_o know_v by_o sense_n for_o i_o make_v account_n there_o be_v not_o a_o man_n in_o the_o world_n or_o ever_o be_v such_o be_v the_o goodness_n of_o rational_a nature_n give_v we_o by_o god_n who_o in_o his_o natural_a thought_n can_v ever_o raise_v such_o a_o doubt_n or_o think_v he_o can_v possible_o frame_v his_o thought_n to_o a_o disbelief_n of_o the_o contrary_a no_o more_o than_o any_o man_n in_o england_n who_o speculative_a scepticism_n have_v not_o besot_v and_o unman_v can_v doubt_v of_o william_n the_o conqueror_n harry_n the_o eighth_n or_o mahomet_n existence_n much_o less_o judge_v the_o contrary_a and_o it_o appear_v at_o first_o sight_n to_o be_v a_o strange_a distorsion_n or_o rather_o destruction_n of_o human_a nature_n which_o can_v so_o alter_v it_o now_o look_v into_o thing_n i_o find_v it_o to_o be_v a_o proper_a and_o natural_a effect_n of_o the_o protestant_n temper_n and_o indeed_o of_o all_o who_o have_v leave_v the_o church_n for_o their_o humour_n be_v to_o choose_v every_o one_o his_o faith_n by_o his_o private_a judgement_n or_o wit_n work_v upon_o disputable_a word_n they_o wonder_v and_o judge_v it_o very_o unreasonable_a their_o posterity_n thus_o imbue_v shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v and_o act_v as_o ancestor_n do_v and_o so_o shall_v i_o too_o for_o while_o they_o can_v never_o deliver_v it_o to_o their_o child_n as_o receive_v ever_o by_o the_o way_n of_o infallible_a sense_n or_o witness_v but_o must_v say_v the_o former_a church_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la err_v and_o consequent_o that_o themselves_o may_v do_v so_o too_o so_o that_o they_o can_v only_o deliver_v it_o as_o depend_v or_o build_v on_o their_o own_o fallible_a opinion_n in_o interpret_n scripture_n all_o which_o be_v imply_v in_o their_o make_v scriptur_n letter_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o allow_v no_o live_v interpreter_n able_a to_o give_v infallible_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o it_o be_v natural_a their_o posterity_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d hold_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o believe_v immediate_a ancestor_n but_o use_v their_o own_o judgement_n and_o choose_v their_o own_o faith_n when_o they_o come_v at_o age_n as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v and_o experience_n tell_v we_o they_o have_v do_v so_o in_o england_n till_o they_o have_v choose_v fair_o and_o this_o horrid_a unreasonableness_n be_v the_o venomous_a source_n the_o first_o defective_a principle_n or_o indeed_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o all_o heresy_n import_v also_o in_o the_o very_a word_n which_o signify_v choice_n or_o choose_v one_o religion_n mention_v by_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n cite_v above_o p._n 135._o and_o counterpose_v by_o he_o to_o tradition_n as_o also_o by_o s._n athanasius_n cite_v p._n 133._o 134._o where_o it_o be_v most_o excellent_o describe_v and_o homely_a apply_v to_o the_o protestant_n and_o such_o other_o as_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v i_o be_o a_o bad_a transcriber_n 27._o i_o have_v do_v my_o main_a task_n and_o so_o shall_v only_o touch_v at_o his_o next_o paragraph_n it_o begin_v thus_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o prove_v the_o impossibility_n of_o motion_n when_o i_o see_v man_n move_v no_o more_o it_o be_v to_o prove_v no_o age_n of_o the_o church_n can_v vary_v from_o the_o forego_n when_o we_o can_v evident_o prove_v they_o have_v do_v it_o you_o argue_v well_o but_o two_o thing_n be_v require_v ere_o you_o can_v see_v our_o faith_n vary_v from_o the_o former_a first_o to_o see_v what_o our_o church_n hold_v now_o and_o then_o to_o see_v what_o the_o former_a church_n hold_v before_o and_o if_o i_o see_v any_o thing_n you_o see_v neither_o well_o for_o while_o you_o can_v distinguish_v between_o faith_n and_o its_o explication_n some_o schoolman_n and_o church_n i_o have_v no_o hope_n you_o shall_v see_v candid_o what_o our_o church_n hold_v now_o and_o if_o you_o can_v at_o present_v see_v what_o our_o church_n hold_v now_o how_o and_o by_o what_o method_n will_v you_o assure_v we_o you_o see_v what_o she_o hold_v former_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v be_v a_o plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o you_o have_v renounce_v all_o live_a attestation_n the_o common_a and_o secure_a way_n to_o bring_v it_o down_o and_o consequent_o father_n too_o for_o father_n speak_v of_o they_o as_o such_o be_v evident_a witnesser_n transmitter_n or_o propagate_v of_o the_o faith_n receive_v to_o immediate_a posterity_n if_o you_o question_v delivery_n or_o tradition_n which_o you_o do_v while_o you_o doubt_v obligation_n in_o posterity_n to_o believe_v ancestor_n you_o question_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o doctrine_n deliver_v and_o so_o any_o father_n and_o i_o wonder_v how_o you_o can_v imagine_v any_o man_n oblige_v to_o believe_v father_n historian_n or_o any_o that_o writ_n or_o testify_v thing_n long_o ago_o and_o yet_o think_v the_o next_o age_n not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o former_a in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n do_v in_o their_o own_o day_n how_o far_o short_a then_o be_v your_o evidence_n of_o the_o former_a church_n doctrine_n like_a to_o prove_v of_o be_v parallel_n to_o our_o see_v a_o man_n move_v with_o our_o corporeal_a eye_n but_o you_o may_v say_v any_o thing_n or_o rather_o indeed_o force_v by_o your_o bad_a cause_n you_o must_v do_v so_o 28._o you_o call_v this_o way_n of_o we_o a_o superficial_a subtlety_n i_o beseech_v you_o consider_v what_o you_o say_v be_v that_o which_o be_v whole_o build_v on_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n as_o you_o see_v we_o do_v superficial_a or_o you_o which_o be_v mere_o a_o airy_a descant_n upon_o dead_a word_n what_o do_v you_o think_v controversy_n be_v i_o deal_v plain_o with_o you_o you_o may_v take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o art_n of_o talk_v and_o i_o think_v you_o do_v so_o though_o you_o will_v not_o profess_v it_o but_o i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o noble_a science_n i_o hold_v its_o object_n to_o be_v rationem_fw-la reddere_fw-la fidei_fw-la or_o to_o maintain_v question_v faith_n which_o be_v chief_o do_v by_o show_v the_o authority_n on_o which_o faith_n depend_v quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la certain_a hence_o all_o other_o authority_n depend_v on_o tradition_n i_o hold_v knowledge_n of_o its_o certainty_n the_o first_o principle_n in_o controversy_n and_o this_o being_n quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la necessary_o antecedent_n to_o authority_n it_o can_v only_o be_v